Selected quad for the lemma: heaven_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
heaven_n earth_n power_n see_v 8,567 5 3.5162 3 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A38590 Catechistical discovrses in vvhich, first, an easy and efficacious way is proposed for instruction of the ignorant, by a breife summe of the Christian doctrine here delivered and declared : secondly, the verity of the Romane Catholike faith is demonstrated by induction from all other religions that are in the world : thirdly, the methode of the Romane catechisme, which the Councell of Trent caused to be made, is commended to practice of instructing in doctrine, confirming in faith, and inciting to good life by catechisticall sermons / by A. E. Errington, Anthony, d. 1719? 1654 (1654) Wing E3246; ESTC R8938 430,353 784

There are 32 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

proper_a office_n with_o such_o part_n and_o ability_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o due_a performance_n of_o it_o some_o of_o they_o incorruptible_a other_o corrupt_v and_o those_o after_o a_o strange_a manner_n conceal_v from_o our_o understanding_n when_o they_o be_v dead_a to_o revive_v again_o to_o life_n by_o the_o corruption_n of_o their_o seed_n so_o from_o body_n we_o come_v to_o spirit_n that_o govern_v they_o and_o among_o spirit_n to_o some_o supreme_a cause_n and_o governor_n of_o they_o all_o which_o if_o we_o will_v attend_v unto_o we_o can_v but_o reflect_v upon_o the_o workman_n that_o make_v it_o and_o admire_v at_o his_o power_n and_o greatness_n that_o marvelous_a mother_n worthy_a of_o good_a man_n memory_n see_v all_o her_o son_n but_o one_o to_o have_v pass_v through_o cruel_a torment_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o martyrdom_n and_o the_o young_a of_o seven_o to_o be_v bring_v to_o execution_n with_o a_o manly_a courageexhort_v he_o 2.7_o mach._n 2.7_o say_v i_o beseech_v thou_o my_o son_n that_o thou_o look_v up_o to_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o to_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o they_o and_o understande_v that_o god_n of_o nothing_o make_v they_o and_o mankind_n and_o cicero_n say_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o manifest_a when_o we_o look_v up_o to_o the_o heaven_n dear_n gi●_n l._n 2._o the_o ●at_a dear_n as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o divine_a power_n that_o make_v and_o govern_v they_o behold_v then_o among_o visible_a creature_n first_o the_o heaven_n see_v their_o huge_a greatness_n and_o capacity_n contain_v not_o only_o a_o thousand_o and_o twenty_o two_o star_n which_o astronomer_n have_v mention_v but_o a_o innumerable_a number_n which_o they_o can_v discern_v to_o reckon_v and_o some_o of_o they_o may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o thousand_o time_n big_a than_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n how_o exceed_o great_a then_o must_v the_o capacity_n of_o the_o heaven_n be_v to_o contain_v they_o all_o behold_v they_o of_o a_o nature_n incorruptible_a so_o solid_a and_o strong_a that_o with_o that_o mighty_a violent_a motion_n which_o some_o of_o they_o have_v they_o never_o break_v nor_o corrupt_v nor_o wear_v away_o the_o least_o hair_n breadth_n see_v their_o great_a brightness_n calmness_n and_o quietness_n without_o any_o noise_n at_o all_o in_o that_o violence_n of_o motion_n look_v upon_o the_o element_n the_o fire_n next_o unto_o the_o starry_a heaven_n under_o that_o the_o air_n and_o then_o the_o water_n and_o the_o earth_n all_o of_o they_o of_o contrary_a nature_n yet_o agree_v together_o in_o those_o admirable_a effect_n which_o we_o see_v to_o result_v of_o their_o concord_n that_o all_o sublunary_a production_n depend_v not_o only_o of_o some_o one_o of_o they_o but_o of_o they_o all_o look_v now_o down_o unto_o the_o earth_n and_o behold_v there_o the_o many_o kind_n of_o live_v and_o sensible_a creature_n and_o among_o they_o all_o one_o only_o endow_v with_o reason_n as_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o rest_n to_o order_v they_o and_o he_o invest_v with_o such_o power_n and_o command_v that_o by_o nature_n they_o fear_v and_o tremble_v at_o his_o voice_n behold_v they_o more_o in_o particular_a and_o first_o thy_o own_o soul_n a_o spiritual_a creature_n which_o can_v move_v in_o a_o instant_n to_o the_o further_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n or_o of_o the_o heaven_n and_o yet_o for_o the_o present_a be_v bind_v to_o a_o earthly_a body_n whether_o it_o will_v or_o no_o consider_v then_o the_o disposition_n of_o thy_o body_n prepare_v as_o a_o seat_n sit_v to_o receive_v it_o and_o with_o part_n convenient_a for_o its_o operation_n and_o this_o not_o by_o its_o own_o reason_n for_o that_o it_o have_v none_o behold_v the_o many_o diverse_a nature_n of_o sensible_a creature_n that_o move_v themselves_o some_o fly_v some_o walk_v some_o creep_a some_o swim_v all_o live_n by_o the_o air_n some_o on_o the_o earth_n some_o within_o the_o earth_n some_o in_o the_o fire_n some_o in_o the_o water_n all_o of_o they_o direct_v by_o some_o reason_n to_o love_v that_o which_o be_v good_a for_o they_o and_o congruous_a to_o their_o nature_n behold_v those_o creature_n that_o live_v without_o sense_n tree_n plant_n flower_n and_o herb_n produce_v fruit_n with_o admirable_a variety_n of_o taste_n smell_n pleasant_a colour_n and_o profitable_a effect_n to_o delight_v the_o sense_n of_o high_a creature_n which_o be_v sensible_a and_o to_o serve_v they_o and_o last_o behold_v the_o earth_n with_o be_v only_o yet_o sustein_v all_o live_a thing_n in_o the_o life_n which_o they_o have_v all_o these_o have_v their_o limit_n set_v their_o perfection_n and_o operation_n and_o be_v bind_v within_o they_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o and_o do_v not_o choose_v for_o themselves_o but_o have_v only_o that_o which_o another_o will_v give_v they_o these_o be_v the_o testimony_n which_o god_n have_v leave_v of_o himself_o and_o by_o these_o testimony_n we_o must_v confess_v the_o supreme_a power_n that_o cause_v all_o this_o and_o set_v it_o in_o that_o order_n which_o we_o see_v it_o to_o have_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v natural_a to_o man_n when_o he_o look_v up_o to_o the_o heaven_n with_o gladness_n of_o hart_n to_o bless_v god_n and_o if_o we_o have_v a_o little_a bird_n fly_v flower_z or_o any_o creature_n though_o never_o so_o imperfect_a in_o our_o hand_n and_o consider_v attentive_o the_o part_n and_o composition_n of_o it_o reason_n present_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o can_v not_o make_v itself_o and_o by_o nature_n we_o bless_v god_n that_o make_v it_o say_v now_o according_a to_o reason_n and_o tell_v we_o who_o it_o be_v that_o make_v the_o heaven_n and_o give_v they_o that_o huge_a vastness_n and_o capacity_n more_o than_o we_o can_v think_v that_o brightness_n calmness_n solidity_n and_o incorruptibility_n who_o give_v to_o the_o element_n their_o mighty_a power_n by_o concord_n to_o produce_v those_o great_a effect_n who_o give_v to_o man_n the_o principality_n over_o other_o creature_n and_o make_v they_o by_o nature_n to_o fear_n and_o obey_v he_o and_o who_o be_v that_o superior_a of_o mankind_n that_o command_v his_o spiritual_a and_o incorruptible_a soul_n to_o his_o corporal_a and_o corruptible_a body_n what_o reason_n be_v it_o that_o direct_v unreasonable_a thing_n to_o that_o which_o be_v good_a for_o they_o and_o make_v those_o which_o be_v unsensible_a to_o yield_v such_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n to_o the_o sense_n and_o who_o give_v to_o the_o earth_n that_o have_v not_o life_n power_n to_o conserve_v the_o life_n of_o other_o thing_n he_o that_o have_v power_n to_o do_v all_o this_o we_o will_v confess_v he_o to_o be_v god_n and_o we_o will_v praise_v and_o bless_v he_o for_o of_o themselves_o they_o can_v not_o be_v at_o all_o nor_o will_v have_v be_v with_o the_o imperfection_n which_o they_o have_v here_o now_o reason_n be_v sufficient_o satisfy_v and_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n convince_v that_o shall_v deny_v god_n for_o the_o reason_n of_o every_o man_n of_o itself_o present_o consent_v if_o by_o malice_n and_o liberty_n it_o be_v not_o force_v to_o the_o contrary_a unto_o some_o superior_a power_n that_o cause_v these_o thing_n and_o that_o power_n all_o though_o we_o can_v comprehend_v it_o because_o it_o be_v above_o we_o and_o must_v needs_o be_v infinite_a in_o perfection_n but_o of_o what_o nature_n soever_o that_o supreme_a power_n be_v mean_v the_o supreme_a we_o say_v god_n and_o bless_v he_o all_o this_o be_v brief_o form_v out_o of_o s._n thomas_n and_o aristotle_n after_o this_o manner_n wheresoever_o we_o see_v motion_n and_o alteration_n in_o any_o thing_n there_o we_o must_v grant_v a_o cause_n of_o that_o motion_n and_o alteration_n but_o we_o see_v motion_n and_o alteration_n in_o the_o production_n of_o creature_n which_o begin_v to_o be_v and_o before_o be_v not_o therefore_o we_o must_v grant_v some_o cause_n of_o that_o motion_n and_o alteration_n by_o which_o they_o be_v produce_v and_o come_v to_o be_v this_o do_v s._n thomas_n call_v a_o demonstration_n and_o aristotle_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o philosopher_n call_v it_o a_o metaphysical_a evidence_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o evidence_n which_o be_v not_o only_o deduce_v by_o physical_a principle_n of_o nature_n but_o that_o the_o contrary_n contain_v repugnance_n in_o itself_o and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o first_o evident_a certainty_n from_o which_o all_o natural_a evidence_n be_v deduce_v and_o to_o contradict_v it_o be_v either_o to_o say_v that_o all_o the_o world_n come_v by_o chance_n or_o else_o to_o run_v from_o cause_n to_o cause_n without_o end_n into_o insinites_n which_o in_o substance_n come_v to_o be_v the_o same_o no_o cause_n at_o all_o be_v assign_v first_o the_o alteration_n which_o we_o see_v can_v not_o come_v by_o chance_n for_o
goodness_n have_v prepare_v for_o us._n but_o we_o will_v speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o god._n in_o the_o first_o article_n of_o the_o crede_fw-la we_o profess_v two_o thing_n god_n one_o god_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o almighty_a god_n and_o second_o that_o we_o believe_v in_o one_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v maker_n but_o the_o maker_n to_o signify_v unity_n by_o the_o first_o atheism_n and_o by_o the_o second_o paganism_n be_v reject_v and_o the_o first_o be_v already_o so_o full_o declare_v it_o will_v not_o be_v needful_a to_o insist_v much_o upon_o the_o second_o point_n it_o be_v a_o verity_n which_o the_o wise_a of_o pagane_n philosopher_n have_v by_o reason_n discover_v who_o have_v confess_v one_o supreme_a and_o first_o cause_n of_o all_o effect_n and_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n report_v of_o seneca_n the_o philosopher_n 60.10_o aug_n de_fw-fr ciu_o decl_n 60.10_o that_o speak_v of_o idol_n he_o use_v to_o say_v that_o of_o custom_n they_o be_v adore_v but_o not_o of_o verity_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n dispute_v with_o the_o learnede_a pagan_n of_o the_o world_n the_o philosopher_n of_o athens_n upon_o this_o point_n 17._o act._n 17._o the_o god_n that_o make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o it_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n dwell_v not_o in_o temple_n make_v with_o hand_n need_v any_o thing_n where_o as_o himself_o give_v life_n unto_o all_o and_o breathe_v and_o all_o thing_n if_o god_n make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o it_o he_o must_v then_o have_v all_o within_o his_o power_n all_o must_v depend_v and_o stand_v need_n of_o he_o and_o he_o himself_o must_v stand_v need_n of_o nothing_o he_o be_v not_o then_o a_o granen_n idol_n that_o stand_v need_n of_o man_n to_o carve_v it_o nor_o any_o live_a creature_n as_o the_o dragon_n of_o babylon_n that_o stand_v need_n of_o some_o to_o serve_v it_o with_o food_n neither_o be_v he_o the_o sun_n or_o moon_n that_o stand_v need_n of_o some_o power_n to_o give_v it_o the_o limit_a perfection_n which_o it_o have_v as_o all_o other_o creature_n god_n need_v no_o other_o god_n for_o than_o he_o be_v not_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o all_o perfection_n include_v all_o perfection_n within_o himself_o this_o be_v sufficient_a by_o natural_a reason_n of_o this_o verity_n that_o which_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v in_o one_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n that_o be_v of_o all_o creature_n heavenly_a and_o earthly_a and_o the_o consetuer_n of_o they_o a_o spiritual_a substance_n infinite_a in_o power_n infinite_a in_o wisdom_n infinite_a in_o goodness_n infinite_a in_o duration_n immense_a in_o infinite_a place_n possible_a and_o in_o all_o perfection_n infinite_a this_o we_o see_v by_o reason_n and_o believe_v by_o faith_n 6._o deut._n 6._o hear_v israël_n the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v one_o lord_n which_o word_n beside_o their_o divine_a authority_n have_v the_o high_a degree_n of_o humane_a credit_n as_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o authentical_a writing_n by_o consent_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n 4._o esa_n 44._o eph._n 4._o i_o be_o the_o first_o and_o i_o the_o last_o and_o beside_o i_o there_o be_v no_o god_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n man_n of_o more_o eminent_a dignity_n and_o authority_n as_o priest_n go_n man_n call_v go_n prophet_n judge_n etc._n etc._n be_v sometime_o in_o holy_a scripture_n call_v god_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o preeminency_n and_o authority_n over_o other_o by_o which_o they_o represent_v the_o divine_a power_n the_o second_o article_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n quest_n who_o be_v christ_n answ_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n incarnate_v true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n our_o redeemer_n judge_n and_o glorifyer_n all_o this_o we_o say_v in_o the_o creed_n when_o we_o profess_v our_o belief_n in_o lesus_fw-la christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marry_o crucify_a for_o our_o redemption_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v we_o all_o and_o that_o there_o be_v life_n everlasting_a to_o wit_n to_o those_o that_o be_v just_a through_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n thus_o this_o answer_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n in_o the_o which_o we_o have_v first_o profess_v our_o faith_n in_o god_n as_o he_o create_v we_o we_o profess_v he_o now_o in_o another_o mystery_n to_o wit_n as_o he_o be_v incarnate_v to_o redeem_v we_o a_o mystery_n which_o we_o can_v never_o acknowledge_v with_o sufficient_a gratitude_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o which_o we_o may_v reflect_v upon_o our_o former_a condition_n and_o the_o misery_n out_o of_o which_o we_o be_v free_v by_o it_o man_n be_v in_o paradise_n in_o a_o happy_a state_n of_o spiritual_a and_o corporal_a delight_n his_o soul_n be_v in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n and_o his_o body_n have_v then_o the_o gift_n of_o immortality_n that_o without_o die_v it_o shall_v enjoy_v those_o pleasure_n for_o a_o time_n and_o afterward_o the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n for_o ever_o he_o be_v warn_v only_o of_o one_o thing_n and_o that_o be_v to_o forbear_v one_o fruit_n of_o paradise_n which_o god_n to_o keep_v he_o in_o obedience_n and_o due_a subjection_n have_v forbid_v he_o to_o eat_v of_o 2._o gen._n 2._o of_o every_o tree_n of_o paradise_n eat_v thou_o but_o of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_o eat_v thou_o not_o for_o in_o what_o day_n soever_o thou_o shall_v eat_v of_o it_o thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n to_o wit_v the_o death_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n man_n forbear_v not_o but_o eat_v of_o that_o forbid_a tree_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o eat_v of_o it_o his_o soul_n die_v instant_o and_o his_o body_n from_o that_o time_n begin_v to_o die_v but_o the_o death_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v indeed_o our_o true_a and_o great_a misery_n god_n be_v move_v with_o pity_n towards_o they_o and_o of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n he_o decree_v to_o revive_v they_o again_o to_o his_o divine_a grace_n and_o favour_n for_o this_o he_o send_v his_o only_a son_n to_o be_v incarnate_v that_o be_v to_o take_v the_o flesh_n and_o nature_n of_o man_n upon_o he_o that_o in_o that_o nature_n he_o may_v make_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o first_o sin_n which_o man_n have_v commit_v and_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n occasion_v by_o it_o and_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v by_o he_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n may_v then_o cease_v against_o we_o and_o we_o become_v his_o belove_a child_n and_o friend_n may_v serve_v he_o worthy_o and_o obtain_v the_o bliss_n of_o heaven_n which_o before_o we_o have_v lose_v all_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n concur_v equal_o to_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o mystery_n as_o have_v all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o undivided_a power_n but_o the_o work_n be_v effect_v in_o the_o son_n only_o the_o second_o person_n who_o be_v incarnate_v author_n common_o declare_v this_o by_o the_o similitude_n of_o two_o help_a another_o to_o put_v on_o a_o garment_n they_o all_o three_o concur_v to_o the_o ve_n of_o one_o of_o they_o and_o one_o of_o they_o only_o be_v vest_v with_o the_o garment_n the_o garment_n in_o this_o mystery_n be_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n with_o which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n only_o be_v vest_v but_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n both_o concur_v with_o he_o to_o the_o put_v on_o of_o that_o garment_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v so_o vest_v that_o in_o christ_n our_o nature_n be_v real_o unite_v to_o he_o we_o say_v true_o that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v true_a man_n as_o consist_v of_o two_o destinct_a nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a according_a to_o his_o divine_a nature_n he_o proceed_v eternal_o from_o god_n the_o father_n according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n he_o proceed_v in_o time_n from_o the_o bless_a virgin_n his_o mother_n and_o according_a to_o that_o nature_n he_o make_v satisfaction_n sufficient_a in_o itself_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v and_o therefore_o we_o call_v he_o out_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n because_o all_o whosoever_o have_v be_v or_o can_v be_v save_v be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o passion_n he_o be_v our_o judge_n and_o in_o the_o latter_a day_n shall_v judge_v us._n he_o be_v our_o glorifyer_n for_o that_o by_o his_o merit_n our_o good_a work_n become_v meritorious_a and_o purchase_v of_o glory_n he_o be_v call_v jesus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v saviour_n not_o only_o because_o he_o be_v our_o saviour_n
indeed_o jesus_n jesus_n but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v his_o proper_a name_n impose_v not_o by_o chance_n but_o by_o the_o will_n and_o express_v commandde_a of_o his_o father_n the_o angel_n forespeak_v it_o to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n when_o he_o say_v behold_v thou_o shall_v conceive_v in_o thy_o womb_n and_o s●alt_v bear_v a_o son_n 1._o luc._n 1._o and_o thou_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n he_o be_v call_v christ_n to_o signify_v his_o dignity_n and_o special_a function_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n christ._n christ._n for_o christ_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v the_o messiah_n or_o anoint_v and_o he_o be_v annoinse_v in_o diverse_a respect_n priest_n and_o king_n be_v anoint_v because_o they_o have_v authority_n from_o god_n to_o represent_v his_o majesty_n prophet_n ancient_o be_v anoint_v because_o they_o be_v the_o interpreter_n of_o god_n and_o dispenser_n of_o divine_a mystery_n as_o priest_n and_o king_n be_v also_o in_o their_o kind_n christ_n have_v all_o these_o office_n and_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n he_o be_v prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n after_o a_o eminent_a manner_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v eminent_o and_o singular_o anoint_v not_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o prophet_n or_o priest_n but_o spiritual_o by_o god_n himself_o 44._o ps_n 44._o thou_o have_v love_v justice_n and_o have_v hate_a iniquity_n therefore_o god_n thy_o god_n have_v anoint_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n god_n anoint_v christ_n and_o prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n be_v anoint_v as_o lesser_a christ_n that_o have_v power_n under_o he_o christ_n show_v himself_o a_o prophet_n actual_o prophesy_v many_o thing_n and_o in_o particular_a the_o most_o remarkable_a passage_n of_o his_o own_o death_n and_o resurrection_n as_o priest_n he_o offer_v the_o most_o holy_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n at_o the_o last_o supper_n and_o afterward_o again_o he_o offer_v the_o same_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n upon_o the_o cros._n he_o also_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o king_n and_o to_o have_v regal_a power_n that_o can_v bring_v king_n to_o adore_v he_o and_o that_o he_o can_v have_v bring_v other_o king_n and_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o they_o to_o his_o foot_n if_o it_o have_v please_v he_o beside_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v his_o kingdom_n he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o king_n of_o it_o allwais_o with_o it_o unto_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o former_a article_n have_v profess_v the_o father_n who_o be_v the_o first_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n now_o they_o profess_v the_o second_o person_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n s._n john_n testify_v that_o which_o be_v here_o profess_a say_v 1.4_o io._n 1.4_o we_o have_v scene_n and_o do_v testify_v that_o the_o father_n have_v send_v the_o son_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o then_o present_o he_o add_v whosoever_o shall_v confess_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n god_n abide_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o god_n this_o all_o good_a christian_n do_v testify_v and_o confess_v and_o for_o that_o end_n the_o apostle_n make_v this_o article_n that_o we_o may_v allwais_o profess_v it_o we_o will_v see_v here_o christianity_n demonstrate_v that_o which_o we_o believe_v and_o profess_v in_o this_o article_n be_v allwais_o believe_v by_o all_o true_a believer_n ever_o from_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n all_o the_o quire_n of_o angel_n in_o their_o first_o creation_n foresee_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v incarnate_v in_o lesus_fw-la christour_n lord_n and_o the_o good_a angel_n willing_o submit_v to_o he_o and_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v save_v by_o his_o precious_a blood_n but_o lucifer_n and_o the_o wicked_a angel_n can_v not_o endure_v to_o see_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n exalt_v to_o that_o high_a dignity_n above_o angel_n that_o our_o nature_n shall_v be_v assume_v of_o god_n and_o not_o they_o which_o he_o can_v but_o will_v not_o assume_v no_o where_o do_v he_o take_v angel_n say_v s._n 2._o heb._n 2._o paul_n but_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n he_o take_v this_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o lucifer_n that_o ennuy_v and_o repine_v at_o the_o glory_n of_o humane_a nature_n in_o jesus_n christ_n he_o draw_v other_o into_o the_o same_o sin_n with_o he_o and_o for_o aspire_v to_o be_v above_o he_o in_o glory_n he_o be_v cast_v down_o into_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o lake_n and_o lose_v that_o glory_n which_o he_o may_v and_o shall_v have_v have_v and_o which_o the_o good_a angel_n have_v by_o submit_v to_o the_o divine_a ordination_n in_o it_o this_o be_v believe_v by_o our_o first_o parent_n in_o paradise_n and_o ever_o since_o as_o i_o shall_v present_o show_v christ_n be_v promise_v to_o they_o and_o after_o they_o to_o the_o follow_a patriarch_n and_o after_o the_o patriarch_n to_o prophet_n they_o deliver_v that_o faith_n to_o posterity_n until_o his_o come_n he_o when_o he_o come_v deliver_v it_o to_o the_o apostle_n they_o to_o the_o church_n the_o church_n by_o a_o continual_a succession_n of_o pastor_n have_v deliver_v it_o until_o our_o time_n as_o it_o do_v now_o to_o we_o say_v i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n in_o this_o faith_n all_o miracle_n have_v be_v wrought_v that_o ever_o be_v wrought_v in_o testimony_n of_o faith_n this_o be_v confess_v by_o heaven_n earth_n sea_n by_o live_a tree_n and_o sensible_a beast_n and_o not_o only_o by_o holy_a man_n but_o even_o by_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n all_o the_o creature_n of_o god_n obey_v christ_n at_o his_o come_n this_o the_o apostle_n see_v and_o be_v command_v by_o he_o to_o speak_v it_o and_o when_o they_o be_v forbid_v by_o his_o enemy_n 4._o act._n 4._o they_o answer_v we_o can_v not_o but_o speak_v the_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v and_o will_v loose_v their_o life_n rather_o than_o they_o will_v cease_v from_o public_o profess_v it_o s._n paul_n who_o see_v not_o the_o miraculous_a life_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o disciple_n nor_o hear_v his_o preach_n but_o be_v afterward_o call_v and_o enlighten_v by_o he_o become_v notwithstanding_o so_o assure_v of_o this_o verity_n and_o by_o true_a charity_n so_o unite_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o think_v it_o be_v unpossible_a for_o any_o torment_n to_o separate_v he_o from_o he_o 8._o rom._n 8._o ●ho_n then_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o charity_n of_o christ_n tribulation_n or_o distress_n or_o famine_n or_o nakedness_n or_o danger_n or_o persecution_n or_o the_o sword_n as_o it_o be_v write_v for_o we_o be_v kill_v for_o thy_o sake_n all_o the_o day_n we_o be_v esteem_v as_o sheep_n of_o slaughter_n but_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o onercome_v because_o of_o he_o that_o have_v love_v us._n for_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n neither_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v neither_o might_n nor_o hight_v nor_o depth_n nor_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o charity_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n s._n paul_n be_v ravish_v and_o enamour_v with_o the_o beauty_n of_o christ_n divinity_n and_o be_v transform_v as_o it_o be_v by_o love_n into_o he_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o visible_a go●_n 1_o colos_n 1._o heb._n 1_o the_o first_o bear_v of_o all_o creature_n by_o who_o he_o make_v the_o world_n be_v the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o sigure_n of_o his_o substance_n who_o the_o angel_n adore_v so_o much_o more_o excellent_a than_o themselves_o as_o he_o have_v inherit_v a_o more_o excellent_a name_n above_o they_o for_o to_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n say_v this_o holy_a apostle_n do_v he_o say_v at_o any_o time_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n to_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o 2._o colos_n 2._o in_o wh●m_fw-la dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n corporal_o all_o this_o do_v s._n paul_n say_v and_o profess_v of_o christ_n it_o be_v then_o no_o marvel_n that_o with_o god_n grace_n he_o will_v defend_v he_o till_o death_n thus_o do_v the_o apostle_n profess_v of_o he_o and_o this_o profession_n they_o make_v good_a by_o many_o miracle_n which_o the_o enemy_n of_o christianity_n have_v write_v of_o and_o confess_v this_o the_o posterity_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v allwais_o profess_v in_o former_a age_n and_o have_v stretch_v forth_o their_o hand_n and_o foot_n upon_o rack_n and_o with_o cheerful_a mind_n have_v yield_v their_o body_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o torturer_n
resurrection_n of_o christ_n but_o his_o resurrection_n excel_v they_o in_o many_o respect_n first_o for_o that_o he_o raise_v himself_o as_o i_o have_v say_v by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o all_o other_o be_v raise_v by_o his_o power_n second_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o aroze_v glorious_a three_o other_o aroze_v to_o death_n as_o well_o as_o to_o life_n four_o his_o resurrection_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o mean_n of_o all_o our_o glorious_a resurrection_n in_o these_o respect_n s._n paul_n call_v he_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o those_o that_o rise_v to_o life_n 15._o cor._n 15._o christ_n say_v he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a the_o first_o fruit_n of_o they_o that_o sleep_n in_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a but_o every_o one_o in_o his_o own_o order_n the_o first_o fruit_n christ_n then_o those_o that_o be_v of_o christ_n the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o great_a comfort_n and_o encouragement_n to_o the_o good_a for_o his_o rise_v to_o glory_n have_v give_v we_o hope_n of_o a_o glorious_a resurrection_n bless_a be_v god_n say_v s._n 1.1_o pet._n 1.1_o peter_n and_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v regenerate_v we_o unto_o a_o lively_a hope_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o dead_a unto_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a we_o be_v encourage_v to_o bear_v with_o patience_n all_o affliction_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o persecution_n in_o this_o world_n in_o hope_n to_o rise_v glorious_a with_o he_o christ_n be_v our_o head_n and_o we_o be_v the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o he_o have_v make_v way_n through_o persecution_n for_o we_o we_o ought_v courageous_o to_o follow_v he_o the_o sixth_o article_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n christ_n have_v consummate_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o his_o death_n on_o the_o cros_n and_o after_o his_o death_n perform_v his_o resurrection_n and_o have_v after_o his_o resurrection_n remain_v forty_o day_n on_o earth_n to_o teach_v his_o disciple_n speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v instruct_v they_o concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n he_o have_v do_v now_o all_o for_o which_o his_o father_n send_v he_o and_o be_v to_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o to_o carry_v mankind_n unto_o that_o bless_a place_n of_o glory_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v for_o they_o he_o take_v therefore_o his_o disciple_n unto_o mount_n olivet_n to_o be_v the_o witness_n of_o his_o ascension_n and_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n and_o blessing_n they_o he_o be_v glorious_o elevate_v in_o their_o sight_n and_o they_o be_v ●avished_v with_o joy_n and_o spiritual_a consolation_n at_o it_o behold_v two_o angel_n who_o the_o evangelist_n call_v man_n stand_v beside_o they_o in_o white_a garment_n and_o say_v to_o they_o 1._o act._n 1._o you_o man_n of_o galily_n why_o stand_v you_o look_v into_o heaven_n this_o jesus_n which_o be_v assumpt_v from_o you_o into_o heaven_n shall_v so_o come_v as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n thus_o will_v our_o saviour_n ascend_v that_o he_o may_v give_v unto_o the_o world_n a_o taste_n and_o scantling_n of_o the_o future_a glory_n and_o a_o memorial_n of_o his_o second_o come_v this_o be_v the_o most_o glorious_a day_n that_o ever_o be_v to_o mankind_n for_o this_o be_v the_o day_n of_o our_o first_o enter_v into_o heaven_n the_o holy_a prophet_n king_n danid_n invit_v all_o the_o world_n to_o the_o joy_n of_o this_o day_n say_v all_o you_o nation_n clap_v hand_n 46._o ps_n 46._o make_v iubilation_n to_o god_n in_o the_o voice_n of_o exultation_n god_n be_v ascend_v in_o iubilation_n to_o day_n man_n nature_n triumph_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o that_o so_o glorious_a that_o it_o be_v exalt_v above_o all_o the_o celestial_a power_n of_o angel_n to_o the_o very_a right_a hand_n of_o god_n ascen_n ser._n 3._o the_o ascen_n see_v o_o man_n say_v s._n john_n chrysostome_n how_o high_a thy_o nature_n be_v exalt_v consider_v the_o distance_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o of_o the_o low_a to_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o from_o those_o high_a heaven_n to_o the_o angel_n and_o from_o they_o to_o the_o high_a power_n and_o from_o those_o to_o the_o seat_n where_o our_o lord_n sit_v humane_a nature_n be_v exalt_v thus_o high_a above_o all_o that_o nature_n which_o be_v of_o itself_o so_o low_o that_o it_o can_v be_v no_o low_o become_v now_o so_o high_a that_o it_o can_v be_v raise_v no_o high_a and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o show_v how_o high_a that_o glory_n be_v which_o mankind_n then_o receive_v will_v inspire_v the_o apostle_n to_o make_v such_o a_o remarkable_a expression_n of_o it_o as_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v set_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o as_o great_a prince_n and_o eminent_a personage_n when_o they_o will_v show_v a_o more_o than_o ordinary_a respect_n to_o some_o other_o prince_n their_o friend_n they_o set_v he_o on_o their_o right_a hand_n so_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o mankind_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n the_o king_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n will_v be_v say_v to_o set_v he_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n a_o great_a expression_n of_o his_o love_n can_v not_o be_v make_v then_o this_o yet_o thus_o will_v he_o have_v his_o apostle_n to_o express_v it_o christ_n ascend_v both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n for_o they_o be_v once_o unite_v together_o in_o his_o resurrection_n be_v never_o more_o to_o be_v separate_v again_o he_o ascend_v by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o not_o as_o elias_n abacuc_n s._n philip_n or_o other_o who_o be_v elevate_v into_o the_o air_n carry_v by_o angel_n for_o their_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v then_o unglorify_v can_v not_o by_o their_o own_o power_n ascend_v but_o christ_n beside_o that_o he_o ascend_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o divinity_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n his_o body_n be_v perfect_o subject_v to_o his_o soul_n and_o be_v therefore_o elevate_v by_o it_o and_o stand_v no_o need_n of_o the_o external_a help_n of_o angel_n in_o that_o he_o be_v say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n we_o be_v to_o understande_v a_o sigurative_a manner_n of_o speech_n which_o god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v use_v to_o accommodate_v himself_o to_o our_o weak_a understanding_n which_o can_v have_v nothing_o represent_v to_o they_o but_o by_o the_o species_n of_o corporal_a thing_n and_o so_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n to_o show_v how_o high_o our_o nature_n be_v exalt_v in_o he_o although_o god_n have_v no_o hand_n nor_o corporal_a part_n as_o be_v a_o spiritual_a substance_n that_o need_v not_o they_o neither_o ought_v we_o to_o think_v by_o this_o that_o there_o be_v any_o precedency_n of_o place_n or_o degree_n of_o dignity_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n but_o that_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o of_o equal_a and_o infinite_a dignity_n christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n be_v say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o creature_n in_o that_o he_o be_v superior_a to_o they_o in_o dignity_n and_o glory_n and_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a nature_n he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o this_o sense_n and_o to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v not_o understande_v as_o arius_n do_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o father_n for_o which_o reason_n the_o holy_a psalmist_n also_o place_v the_o son_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n 109._o ps_n 109._o and_o then_o present_o in_o the_o same_o psalm_n the_o father_n on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o son_n to_o signify_v equality_n betwixt_o they_o let_v we_o now_o apply_v this_o mystery_n to_o the_o profit_n of_o our_o soul_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o benefit_n of_o it_o and_o receive_v the_o gift_n which_o be_v then_o give_v 67._o ps_n 67._o for_o it_o be_v write_v ascend_v on_o high_a he_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a he_o give_v gift_n to_o man_n 4._o iph._n 4._o these_o gift_n be_v too_o great_a to_o be_v speak_v for_o unto_o some_o he_o give_v then_o the_o gift_n of_o heavenly_a bless_v towit_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o in_o limbus_n who_o he_o free_v out_o of_o captivity_n and_o carry_v with_o he_o and_o to_o those_o who_o he_o leave_v behind_o he_o on_o earth_n he_o give_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o perform_v that_o promise_n within_o a_o while_n send_v he_o to_o comfort_v and_o
pray_v by_o it_o for_o this_o we_o will_v implore_v the_o intercession_n of_o our_o bessed_a lady_n haile_o mary_n etc._n etc._n christ_n the_o best_a pastor_n that_o every_o be_v and_o the_o form_n of_o all_o good_a pastor_n teach_v his_o disciple_n all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o to_o know_v will_v not_o leave_v they_o ignorant_a in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o much_o importance_n as_o prayer_n be_v and_o therefore_o he_o will_v not_o only_o deliver_v unto_o they_o some_o circumstance_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o prayer_n as_o to_o pray_v with_o humility_n confidence_n and_o the_o like_a but_o will_v also_o give_v they_o a_o express_a form_n of_o word_n to_o be_v use_v by_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v it_o as_o a_o pattern_n and_o perfect_a modele_n to_o frame_v all_o their_o prayer_n by_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v be_v ask_v of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o some_o of_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la but_o before_o we_o come_v to_o declare_v the_o petition_n in_o particular_a we_o will_v say_v something_o of_o prayer_n in_o general_n and_o first_o of_o the_o benefit_n and_o fruit_n of_o prayer_n the_o benefit_n and_o fruit_n of_o prayer_n be_v so_o many_o and_o general_a that_o we_o need_v not_o name_v any_o but_o say_v all_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o can_v be_v good_a for_o we_o or_o worthy_a of_o ask_v but_o it_o may_v be_v obtain_v by_o devout_a prayer_n 15._o io._n 15._o our_o bless_a saviour_n have_v promise_v without_o exception_n if_o you_o abide_v in_o i_o and_o my_o word_n abide_v in_o you_o you_o shall_v ask_v what_o thing_n soever_o you_o will_v 7._o mat._n 7._o and_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v to_o you_o and_o the_o more_o to_o incite_v we_o to_o pray_v he_o say_v ask_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o seekö_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v knock_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v open_v to_o you_o for_o every_o one_o that_o ask_v receive_v and_o that_o seek_v find_v and_o to_o he_o that_o knock_v it_o shall_v be_v open_v and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o say_v 18_o luc._n 18_o it_o behove_v always_o to_o pray_v and_o not_o to_o be_v weary_a what_o more_o can_v be_v say_v to_o commend_v prayer_n to_o we_o and_o to_o show_v the_o force_n and_o fruit_n of_o it_o it_o be_v as_o necessary_a as_o our_o very_a breath_n for_o as_o we_o can_v not_o live_v without_o continual_a breathe_n no_o more_o can_v our_o soul_n without_o continual_a prayer_n we_o will_v say_v then_o that_o prayer_n be_v the_o breath_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o although_o this_o be_v verify_v by_o continue_v in_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n and_o in_o all_o good_a work_n which_o as_o prayer_n please_v god_n and_o obtain_v benefit_n of_o he_o yet_o he_o will_v commend_v all_o by_o the_o name_n of_o prayer_n and_o bid_v we_o pray_v always_o to_o increase_v in_o we_o the_o esteem_n of_o it_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v find_v by_o experience_n the_o force_n of_o prayer_n 6._o deut._n 6._o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o moses_n who_o remain_v diverse_a time_n forty_o day_n and_o forty_o night_n in_o prayer_n for_o the_o people_n as_o himself_o witness_v and_o when_o they_o be_v in_o battle_v with_o amalech_n as_o long_o as_o he_o lift_v up_o his_o hand_n to_o pray_v they_o overcome_v and_o when_o he_o be_v weary_a as_o his_o arm_n fail_v so_o they_o fail_v against_o their_o enemy_n in_o imitation_n of_o which_o theodosius_n the_o christian_a emperor_n be_v to_o join_v battle_v with_o the_o tyrant_n lugenius_n go_v first_o up_o unto_o a_o high_a place_n where_o he_o may_v behold_v both_o arm_n and_o beseech_v god_n that_o be_v that_o the_o undertake_n of_o that_o war_n be_v for_o his_o sake_n he_o will_v give_v he_o victory_n over_o his_o enemy_n his_o prayer_n be_v hear_v 394._o baron_fw-fr a_o 394._o the_o two_o apostle_n s._n john_n and_o s._n philip_n be_v see_v to_o sigh_v for_o he_o and_o to_o turn_v the_o weapon_n of_o their_o enemy_n against_o themselves_o david_n be_v a_o king_n can_v find_v leisure_n to_o give_v praise_n to_o god_n seven_o time_n a_o day_n in_o imitation_n of_o which_o the_o catholic_n church_n command_v the_o seven_o canonical_a hour_n to_o be_v say_v every_o day_n by_o ecclesiastical_a person_n 8._o tob._n 8._o under_o a_o mortal_a sin_n toby_n be_v marry_v remain_v the_o three_o first_o night_n with_o his_o wife_n in_o prayer_n before_o that_o he_o have_v knowledge_n of_o she_o profess_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o marry_v she_o not_o for_o fleshly_a lust_n but_o for_o the_o love_n of_o posterity_n in_o which_o his_o divine_a name_n may_v be_v honour_v and_o she_o who_o on_o the_o very_a first_o night_n of_o her_o former_a marriage_n have_v bury_v seven_o husband_n enjoy_v toby_n with_o life_n and_o health_n the_o devil_n who_o have_v kill_v they_o have_v no_o power_n over_o he_o s._n bartholomew_n be_v record_v to_o have_v pray_v a_o hundred_o time_n every_o day_n and_o as_o often_o every_o night_n and_o diverse_a other_o saint_n be_v read_v to_o have_v follow_v his_o example_n 1._o hist_o trip_v l._n 8._o c._n 1._o s._n paul_n the_o ermit_n be_v affirm_v to_o have_v say_v every_o day_n three_o hundred_o prayer_n which_o he_o remember_v by_o three_o hundred_o little_a stone_n before_o he_o attend_v to_o any_o other_o business_n and_o gregory_n lopez_n a_o holy_a man_n who_o live_v late_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o new_a spain_n be_v think_v for_o many_o year_n at_o every_o draw_n of_o his_o breath_n to_o have_v say_v in_o his_o hart_n cousin_n in_o vitu_fw-la cousin_n thy_o will_v be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n amen_o jesus_n by_o all_o which_o we_o may_v see_v the_o great_a esteem_n which_o the_o saint_n have_v have_v of_o prayer_n and_o the_o benefit_n which_o they_o expect_v by_o it_o but_o now_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o that_o which_o it_o have_v in_o particular_a as_o its_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a fruit_n the_o first_o be_v that_o by_o prayer_n we_o keep_v our_o heart_n in_o humility_n and_o submission_n to_o god_n acknowledge_v by_o our_o prayer_n that_o he_o be_v the_o supreme_a power_n and_o high_a perfection_n from_o whence_o all_o benefit_n proceed_v and_o that_o we_o depend_v of_o he_o as_o his_o creature_n 8._o apoc._n 8._o come_v for_o succour_n and_o relief_n to_o he_o and_o therefore_o s._n john_n see_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n as_o incense_v which_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o altar_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n pray_v with_o the_o holy_a king_n say_v 440._o ps_n 440._o let_v my_o prayer_n be_v direct_v as_o incense_v in_o thy_o sight_n because_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o inferior_a sacrifice_n and_o have_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o to_o do_v homage_n unto_o god_n and_o to_o keep_v we_o in_o humility_n towards_o he_o the_o second_o fruit_n of_o prayer_n be_v that_o it_o pacify_v the_o divine_a wrath_n provoke_v by_o sin_n for_o although_o the_o prayer_n of_o a_o sinner_n as_o long_o as_o he_o be_v in_o mortal_a sin_n have_v no_o proportion_n to_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n or_o to_o the_o release_n of_o his_o punishment_n yet_o it_o be_v congruous_a and_o most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o infinite_a goodness_n and_o liberality_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v accept_v of_o the_o endeavour_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o shall_v grant_v we_o his_o grace_n for_o such_o endeavour_n and_o so_o sinner_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n obtain_v grace_n of_o congruity_n by_o pray_v for_o it_o but_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o just_a be_v so_o powerful_a that_o after_o a_o certain_a manner_n it_o force_v god_n as_o it_o be_v by_o violence_n to_o grant_v that_o which_o he_o desire_v and_o hold_v his_o hand_n from_o punish_v of_o other_o even_o as_o strong_a dam_n well_o fortify_v with_o stone_n and_o timber_n resist_v huge_a inundation_n of_o water_n and_o support_v their_o mighty_a weight_n so_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o just_a resist_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o bear_v of_o the_o weight_n of_o his_o indignation_n from_o sinner_n this_o be_v express_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o moses_n when_o israel_n have_v adore_v the_o melt_a calf_n and_o the_o divine_a indignation_n be_v come_v as_o a_o torrent_n to_o sweep_v they_o quite_o away_o from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o prayer_n of_o moses_n have_v such_o power_n to_o withstand_v it_o that_o god_n say_v exod._n 23._o suffer_v i_o that_o my_o fury_n may_v be_v angry_a against_o they_o as_o though_o he_o have_v hold_v he_o by_o force_n from_o destroy_v they_o three_o as_o i_o say_v before_o of_o sinner_n that_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o punishment_n be_v obtain_v as_o it_o be_v by_o violence_n
it_o as_o by_o reason_n a_o most_o efficacious_a motive_n and_o convince_a argument_n full_o to_o satisfy_v their_o understanding_n and_o to_o draw_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o first_o christ_n will_v so_o notify_v the_o mystery_n of_o his_o resurrection_n in_o his_o life_n time_n as_o that_o his_o very_a enemy_n may_v stand_v in_o expectation_n afterward_o to_o see_v the_o performance_n of_o it_o and_o that_o by_o it_o he_o may_v not_o only_o encourage_v his_o disciple_n and_o reinforce_v they_o who_o as_o faint_z heart_a soldier_n have_v forsake_v he_o in_o his_o passion_n but_o also_o that_o it_o may_v serve_v as_o a_o testimony_n to_o the_o world_n of_o the_o verity_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o that_o his_o suffering_n be_v voluntary_o undergo_v and_o of_o his_o own_o good_a will_n that_o so_o the_o scandal_n of_o the_o cros_n may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o all_o see_v his_o power_n may_v believe_v in_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o and_o promise_v it_o first_o whilst_o he_o live_v and_o will_v in_o his_o passion_n be_v public_o accuse_v of_o it_o until_o he_o have_v make_v it_o so_o know_v that_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o pharisee_n hear_v ofit_n may_v labour_v all_o they_o can_v to_o hinder_v it_o and_o that_o all_o their_o labour_n may_v appear_v to_o be_v in_o vain_a when_o therefore_o they_o have_v get_v their_o malice_n fullfil_v and_o according_a to_o their_o desire_n have_v procure_v his_o death_n they_o come_v together_o to_o pilate_n and_o say_v sir_n 27._o mat._n 27._o we_o have_v remember_v that_o the_o seducer_n say_v yet_o live_v after_o three_o day_n i_o will_v rise_v again_o command_v therefore_o the_o sepulchre_n to_o be_v keep_v until_o the_o three_o day_n lest_o perhaps_o his_o disciple_n come_v and_o steal_v he_o away_o and_o say_v to_o the_o people_n he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n and_o pilate_n say_v you_o have_v a_o guard_n g●e_v guard_v he_o as_o you_o know_v and_o they_o depart_v make_v the_o sepulchre_n sure_a seal_v up_o the_o stone_n with_o watchmen_z thus_o will_v christ_n have_v his_o resurrection_n to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o and_o to_o be_v oppose_v before_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o will_v permit_v his_o enemy_n to_o use_v what_o mean_v they_o can_v to_o prevent_v and_o hinder_v it_o or_o to_o conceal_v it_o but_o what_o be_v man_n to_o compare_v with_o god_n or_o who_o can_v hinder_v the_o divine_a ordinance_n by_o these_o mean_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n become_v better_o testify_v and_o be_v make_v more_o apparent_a afterward_o when_o he_o make_v good_a his_o word_n and_o perform_v it_o on_o the_o three_o day_n early_o in_o the_o morning_n the_o devout_a woman_n be_v come_v to_o the_o monument_n 28._o mat._n 28._o behold_v there_o be_v make_v a_o great_a earth_n quake_v for_o a_o angel_n of_o our_o lord_n descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o come_v roll_v back_o the_o stone_n and_o sate_v upon_o it_o and_o his_o countenace_n be_v as_o lightning_n and_o his_o garment_n white_a as_o snowand_a for_o fear_v of_o he_o the_o watchman_n be_v affright_v and_o become_v as_o dead_a and_o the_o angel_n answer_v say_v to_o the_o woman_n fear_v not_o you_o for_o i_o know_v that_o you_o seek_v jesus_n that_o be_v crucify_a he_o be_v not_o here_o for_o he_o be_v rise_v as_o he_o say_v come_v and_o see_v the_o place_n where_o our_o lord_n be_v lay_v all_o these_o thing_n the_o watchman_n be_v make_v witness_n of_o and_o testify_v they_o to_o the_o chief_a priest_n who_o consult_v together_o give_v they_o a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n to_o say_v that_o his_o disciple_n have_v come_v by_o night_n and_o have_v steal_v he_o away_o when_o they_o be_v a_o sleep_n and_o promise_v to_o they_o that_o if_o the_o precedent_n shall_v come_v to_o hear_v of_o it_o they_o will_v persuade_v he_o and_o secure_v they_o who_o notwithstanding_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v by_o they_o but_o take_v the_o particular_a examination_n of_o it_o from_o the_o watchman_n themselves_o inform_v caesar_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o by_o his_o information_n and_o other_o motive_n the_o emperor_n be_v so_o move_v in_o affection_n towards_o christ_n that_o he_o propose_v in_o the_o senate_n for_o divine_a honour_n to_o be_v give_v to_o he_o by_o the_o roman_n and_o be_v offend_v that_o he_o obtain_v it_o not_o he_o protect_v those_o that_o be_v devote_a unto_o he_o and_o command_v under_o pain_n of_o death_n that_o none_o shall_v hinder_v their_o devotion_n but_o christ_n will_v not_o leave_v his_o resurrection_n with_o these_o only_a although_o sufficient_a testimony_n of_o the_o good_a woman_n and_o evil_a watchman_n but_o will_v appear_v alive_a unto_o many_o more_o and_o remain_v forty_o day_n after_o it_o upon_o earth_n that_o by_o many_o apparition_n in_o which_o he_o often_o show_v himself_o he_o may_v give_v sufficient_a proof_n of_o it_o 16._o mar._n 16._o we_o have_v how_o that_o first_o he_o appear_v to_o mary_n magdalene_n after_o that_o to_o two_o disciple_n go_v to_o emaus_n after_o that_o to_o all_o the_o disciple_n together_o except_z thomas_z who_o then_o be_v not_o with_o they_o after_o that_o to_o they_o all_o again_o when_o thomas_n be_v with_o they_o and_o permit_v he_o to_o be_v incredulous_a of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o not_o to_o believe_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v it_o that_o he_o may_v both_o see_v he_o and_o feel_v he_o to_o be_v rise_v again_o and_o shall_v confess_v he_o in_o those_o circumstance_n to_o be_v his_o lord_n and_o his_o god_n 1.15_o cor._n 1.15_o and_o s._n paul_n mention_v to_o the_o corinthian_n how_o that_o he_o appear_v to_o more_o than_o five_o hundred_o brethren_n together_o thus_o will_v our_o saviour_n take_v still_o more_o and_o more_o witness_n of_o his_o resurrection_n before_o that_o he_o will_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n 1._o act._n 1._o s●ewing_v himself_o alive_a after_o his_o passion_n by_o many_o argument_n for_o he_o be_v see_v hear_v feel_v and_o do_v eat_v with_o the_o live_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o resurrection_n be_v so_o manifest_a and_o certain_a that_o all_o our_o evangelist_n in_o their_o ghospel_n will_v record_v it_o without_o fear_n of_o either_o jew_n or_o gentil_n disproove_v they_o in_o it_o and_o so_o certain_a that_o josephus_n the_o best_a historiographer_n of_o those_o time_n and_o who_o flourish_v immediate_o after_o they_o can_v not_o with_o his_o honour_n although_o a_o jew_n question_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o or_o omit_v to_o speak_v of_o it_o but_o have_v record_v it_o for_o true_a among_o the_o public_a and_o remarkable_a thing_n that_o then_o happen_v common_o know_v and_o unquestioned_a and_o have_v leave_v in_o his_o history_n this_o worthy_a say_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v in_o these_o time_n jesus_n a_o wise_a man_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o call_v he_o a_o man_n 6._o josl_n 18_o antiquit_fw-la c._n 6._o for_o he_o be_v a_o worker_n of_o miraculous_a thing_n and_o a_o teacher_n of_o those_o that_o desire_v the_o truth_n and_o adjoin_v unto_o himself_o many_o both_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n this_o be_v christ_n he_o do_v pilate_n crucify_v at_o t●e_v accusation_n of_o the_o chief_a of_o our_o nation_n but_o those_o that_o lou●d_v he_o yet_o forsake_v he_o not_o for_o ●e_n appear_v again_o unto_o they_o the_o three_o day_n alive_a because_o the_o prophet_n by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o god_n foretell_v these_o and_o other_o innumerable_a miracle_n of_o he_o in_o which_o word_n of_o this_o author_n be_v contain_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v of_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o confirm_v his_o doctrine_n with_o miracle_n and_o his_o miraculous_a life_n by_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a the_o prophet_n be_v inspire_v to_o foretell_v these_o thing_n of_o he_o and_o as_o christ_n himself_o first_o found_v the_o gospel_n of_o our_o belief_n in_o the_o fanctity_n of_o his_o own_o life_n and_o miracle_n preach_v the_o apostle_n preach_v so_o also_o will_v he_o have_v the_o same_o faith_n to_o be_v propagate_v afterward_o by_o the_o sanctity_n and_o miracle_n of_o his_o apostle_n first_o their_o holiness_n of_o life_n be_v admittable_a even_o to_o their_o enemy_n they_o be_v content_v with_o shame_n poverty_n hunger_n cold_a heat_n imprisonment_n banishment_n whip_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o disgrace_n and_o cruelty_n that_o they_o may_v honour_v christ_n and_o enjoy_v he_o and_o so_o willing_o do_v they_o suffer_v without_o ever_o repent_v they_o of_o that_o which_o they_o have_v do_v for_o christ_n sake_n that_o after_o persecution_n they_o still_o begin_v again_o to_o preach_v he_o carry_v his_o gospel_n from_o place_n to_o place_n and_o proclaim_v it_o among_o all_o sort_n of_o
the_o reward_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v after_o victory_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o great_a encouragement_n unto_o us._n we_o shall_v have_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o king_n elder_a daughter_n and_o by_o it_o everlasting_a glory_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n remember_v then_o that_o thou_o be_v the_o soldier_n of_o god_n and_o in_o all_o temptation_n think_v that_o he_o than_o call_v thou_o forth_o to_o fight_v for_o he_o in_o his_o own_o presence_n and_o before_o the_o host_n of_o his_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o that_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o they_o all_o and_o in_o their_o hear_n he_o have_v make_v the_o promise_n of_o thy_o reward_n and_o beside_o that_o he_o will_v so_o help_v thou_o that_o thou_o be_v sure_a of_o victory_n if_o thou_o will_v who_o in_o this_o case_n will_v not_o run_v unto_o the_o battle_v this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o every_o one_o of_o us._n 2._o apos_n 2._o god_n have_v promise_v to_o he_o that_o overcom_v i_o will_v give_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n to_o wit_n everlasting_a and_o he_o give_v unto_o every_o one_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o overcome_v be_v he_o not_o a_o coward_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o before_o the_o whole_a court_n of_o heaven_n that_o shall_v refuse_v to_o fight_v upon_o these_o term_n think_v what_o this_o reward_n be_v a_o eternity_n of_o happiness_n and_o when_o thou_o have_v think_v for_o a_o good_a space_n say_v to_o thyself_o i_o can_v not_o comprehend_v that_o eternal_a happiness_n 83._o ep._n 205._o ad_fw-la cyr_n hicros_n ps_n 83._o in_o the_o epistle_n which_o be_v common_o say_v to_o be_v s._n augustins_n he_o describe_v a_o vision_n which_o himself_o have_v to_o his_o purpose_n and_o i_o will_v give_v it_o you_o as_o near_o as_o i_o can_v in_o the_o same_o word_n and_o stile_n i_o be_v say_v he_o in_o my_o cell_n at_o hippo_n rest_v and_o greedy_o think_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o bless_a and_o of_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o joy_n and_o be_v compel_v by_o the_o entreaty_n of_o my_o dear_a severus_n once_o the_o disciple_n of_o venerable_a martin_n bishop_n of_o turon_n i_o desire_v to_o setforth_o a_o short_a treatise_n of_o this_o matter_n but_o have_v pen_n in_o my_o hand_n to_o write_v to_o most_o holy_a hierome_n for_o his_o opinion_n in_o it_o when_o i_o have_v begin_v the_o exordium_n of_o my_o salutation_n behold_v a_o sudden_a light_n such_o as_o our_o time_n have_v not_o see_v nor_o can_v be_v speak_v with_o our_o tongue_n enter_v into_o my_o cell_n and_o fill_v it_o with_o a_o unspeakable_a sweetness_n of_o all_o odour_n which_o when_o i_o see_v i_o be_v so_o astonish_v that_o the_o power_n of_o my_o mind_n and_o body_n be_v quite_o take_v from_o i_o for_o i_o know_v not_o then_o that_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n have_v exalt_v his_o servant_n because_o at_o that_o very_a hour_n do_v s._n hierome_n depart_v this_o world_n and_o therefore_o because_o my_o eye_n have_v never_o see_v the_o like_a brightness_n nor_o ever_o have_v i_o feel_v such_o sweetness_n i_o wonder_v and_o be_v quite_o ravish_v with_o it_o and_o be_v in_o this_o sort_n i_o hear_v a_o voice_n come_v forth_o of_o that_o light_a say_n to_o i_o augustine_n what_o do_v thou_o mean_v do_v thou_o think_v to_o put_v the_o sea_n into_o a_o little_a dish_n to_o hold_v all_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o compass_n of_o thy_o hand_n to_o detain_v the_o heaven_n from_o their_o natural_a course_n shall_v thy_o eye_n see_v that_o which_o none_o can_v see_v shall_v thy_o ear_n hear_v more_o than_o the_o ear_n of_o any_o and_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v not_o enter_v into_o any_o hart_n do_v thou_o think_v to_o conceive_v they_o where_o be_v the_o end_n of_o that_o which_o be_v endless_a how_o will_v thou_o measure_v that_o which_o be_v immense_a the_o sea_n shall_v be_v put_v into_o a_o little_a dish_n the_o earth_n shall_v become_v a_o handful_n and_o the_o heaven_n shall_v soon_o stay_v their_o course_n than_o thou_o shall_v understande_v the_o least_o part_n of_o that_o joy_n and_o glory_n which_o the_o bless_a enjoy_v but_o that_o thou_o shall_v understande_v that_o which_o i_o know_v now_o by_o experience_n not_o to_o undertake_v impossible_a thing_n seek_v not_o to_o understande_v but_o labour_v to_o get_v that_o glory_n which_o thou_o will_v conceive_v thus_o s._n hierome_n will_v prevent_v his_o letter_n and_o satisfy_v he_o by_o experience_n in_o that_o which_o he_o desire_v to_o understande_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v above_o humane_a understanding_n it_o be_v enough_o for_o we_o to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v a_o life_n in_o which_o god_n be_v enjoy_v for_o ever_o but_o here_o we_o can_v not_o comprehend_v what_o god_n be_v what_o ever_o be_v or_o what_o that_o life_n be_v in_o which_o god_n be_v enjoy_v and_o which_o they_o lead_v in_o heaven_n o_o the_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o god_n o_o eternity_n o_o sweet_a life_n in_o which_o that_o infinite_a good_a be_v eternal_o enjoy_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o the_o best_a in_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o god_n the_o sum_n and_o height_n of_o perfection_n i_o say_v all_o in_o this_o word_n perfection_n and_o this_o perfection_n thou_o shall_v allwais_o desire_v 23._o ps_n 23._o and_o have_v it_o allwais_o there_o as_o thou_o defire_v in_o god_n how_o belove_a be_v thy_o tabernacle_n o_o lord_n of_o host_n my_o soul_n covet_v and_o faint_v unto_o the_o court_n of_o our_o lord_n my_o hart_n and_o my_o flesh_n have_v rejoice_v towards_o the_o live_a god_n this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o of_o true_a faith_n that_o we_o gain_v everlasting_a life_n this_o be_v the_o final_a but_o infinite_a reward_n which_o catholics_n only_o and_o none_o but_o good_a catholics_n come_v to_o receive_v that_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v place_v in_o perfect_a spiritual_a pleasure_n and_o our_o body_n in_o corporal_a and_o shall_v still_o aim_v at_o that_o which_o be_v most_o perfect_a and_o enjoy_v that_o perfection_n which_o they_o aim_v at_o to_o wit_n god_n in_o his_o glory_n the_o five_o discourse_n of_o the_o sacrament_n i_o intend_v to_o declare_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o you_o which_o as_o they_o be_v the_o most_o estimable_a jewel_n and_o precious_a ornament_n by_o which_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n be_v apply_v for_o the_o sanctification_n of_o our_o soul_n so_o it_o be_v very_o necessary_a for_o all_o to_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o they_o that_o those_o holy_a mystery_n be_v receive_v with_o due_a reverence_n may_v bless_v and_o effectual_o sanctify_v the_o receiver_n of_o they_o 7._o mat._n 7._o give_v not_o that_o which_o be_v holy_a to_o dog_n neither_o cast_v you_o your_o pearl_n before_o swine_n say_v our_o bless_a saviour_n that_o be_v that_o holy_a thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o unworthy_a and_o as_o s._n augustine_n have_v note_v especial_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v understand_v by_o pearl_n as_o the_o most_o precious_a of_o holy_a thing_n that_o i_o may_v speak_v worthy_o of_o they_o and_o you_o receive_v benefit_n by_o my_o speech_n we_o will_v say_v the_o hail_n mary_n for_o our_o bless_a lady_n intercession_n haile_o marry_o etc._n etc._n quest_n what_o be_v a_o sacrament_n answ_n a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o outward_a sign_n which_o cause_v grace_n in_o us._n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v a_o outward_a sign_n and_o to_o be_v a_o outward_a sign_n be_v to_o be_v something_o that_o may_v be_v perceive_v outward_o by_o the_o sense_n by_o the_o sense_n of_o see_v we_o perceive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v as_o the_o ablution_n in_o baptism_n and_o by_o the_o sense_n of_o hear_v the_o word_n that_o be_v say_v and_o in_o that_o which_o be_v do_v and_o say_v consist_v the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o every_o sacrament_n as_o it_o be_v a_o outward_a sign_n to_o our_o sense_n s._n augustine_n the_o word_n be_v join_v to_o the_o element_n and_o there_o be_v a_o sacrament_n the_o sacrament_n cause_n grace_n in_o we_o io._n tract_n 80._o in_o io._n because_o they_o be_v the_o mean_n which_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o sanctify_v we_o by_o and_o we_o can_v not_o be_v sanctify_v but_o by_o the_o divine_a grace_n be_v cause_v in_o us._n of_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o prime_a and_o proper_a effect_n of_o every_o sacrament_n be_v to_o cause_n grace_n for_o they_o be_v not_o only_a sign_n to_o signify_v that_o god_n then_o give_v grace_n but_o they_o have_v power_n give_v they_o of_o god_n to_o cause_n grace_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o worthy_o receive_v they_o that_o as_o a_o cherry_n tree_n produce_v a_o cherry_n and_o a_o
in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o ancient_a and_o true_a doctrine_n be_v better_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o obligation_n for_o all_o to_o receive_v under_o both_o kind_n for_o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v observe_v when_o christ_n say_v unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o 6._o io._n 6._o he_o add_v also_o he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o by_o which_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v receive_v as_o much_o in_o the_o host_n only_o as_o in_o both_o the_o host_n and_o the_o chalice_n everlasting_a life_n be_v promise_v to_o those_o that_o eat_v that_o sacred_a bread_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o effect_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o give_v grace_n by_o which_o we_o become_v the_o adopt_a child_n of_o god_n nourish_v and_o feed_v as_o it_o be_v at_o his_o own_o table_n our_o soul_n have_v satiety_n in_o he_o and_o obtain_v by_o it_o the_o fullnes_n of_o his_o glory_n that_o where_o as_o according_a to_o s._n io._n tract_n 26._o in_o io._n augustine_n by_o other_o meat_n and_o drink_v we_o seek_v to_o be_v satiate_v there_o be_v no_o true_a satiety_n but_o in_o this_o by_o which_o we_o gain_v heaven_n and_o it_o be_v especial_o gain_v by_o this_o sacrament_n both_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o more_o special_a union_n which_o we_o bave_v with_o christ_n in_o it_o and_o also_o for_o that_o the_o gift_n of_o perseverance_n be_v especial_o here_o obtain_v as_o by_o a_o strong_a and_o nourish_a bread_n it_o remit_v sin_n and_o preserve_v from_o future_a sin_n according_a to_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o receiver_n according_a to_o which_o also_o it_o blot_v out_o the_o punishment_n due_a to_o it_o it_o have_v for_o its_o proper_a effect_n to_o feed_v and_o to_o strengthen_v the_o soul_n to_o keep_v it_o in_o spiritual_a health_n and_o vigour_n and_o because_o for_o the_o most_o part_n it_o be_v receive_v with_o more_o fervour_n and_o sweetness_n of_o devotion_n and_o outward_o in_o the_o similitude_n of_o bread_n therefore_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o manna_n of_o the_o israëlit_n which_o be_v think_v by_o some_o to_o have_v have_v the_o sweetness_n of_o all_o taste_n s._n 62._o l._n 8._o ep_n 62._o ambrose_n we_o have_v the_o manna_n every_o day_n rain_v down_o upon_o we_o that_o body_n which_o come_v from_o the_o virgin_n and_o s._n john_n chrysostome_n therefore_o call_v it_o the_o fountain_n of_o paradise_n from_o whence_o sensible_a river_n flow_v 1._o ho._n 45_o to_o 1._o the_o saint_n of_o god_n have_v be_v so_o transport_v with_o spiritual_a consolation_n in_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o good_a and_o authentical_a writer_n have_v record_v of_o some_o who_o have_v live_v for_o diverse_a month_n and_o of_o other_o who_o for_o some_o year_n together_o have_v be_v sustain_v without_o any_o other_o food_n s._n katherine_n of_o sienna_n be_v singular_o devote_a to_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n she_o receive_v it_o every_o day_n except_o her_o confessor_n command_v the_o contrary_a who_o she_o obey_v in_o all_o thing_n and_o no_o doubt_v but_o that_o for_o a_o long_a time_n she_o be_v sustain_v only_o by_o it_o in_o her_o life_n it_o be_v say_v that_o as_o child_n earn_v unto_o their_o mother_n breast_n so_o do_v she_o to_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n and_o that_o it_o often_o happen_v that_o she_o be_v in_o a_o ecstasy_n all_o the_o time_n of_o mass_n until_o communion_n and_o then_o come_v to_o herself_o will_v say_v o_o my_o lord_n although_o i_o be_v dead_a i_o shall_v revive_v again_o to_o enjoy_v thou_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n quest_n what_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n answ_n pennance_n be_v a_o sacrament_n by_o which_o we_o have_v the_o forgiunesse_fw-fr of_o sin_n in_o confession_n first_o we_o will_v show_v that_o this_o be_v a_o sacrament_n in_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o then_o we_o will_v declare_v the_o part_n of_o it_o and_o benefit_n which_o be_v receive_v by_o it_o although_o luther_n for_o the_o most_o part_n deny_v this_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o labour_v with_o other_o protestant_n to_o rob_v the_o world_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o yet_o l._n the_o cap_a bab_n he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n there_o he_o say_v true_o for_o it_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o have_v all_o that_o be_v include_v even_o in_o the_o protestant_n definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n apol._n confess_v art_n 13._o which_o be_v to_o be_v a_o outward_a sign_n institute_v of_o christ_n by_o which_o grace_n be_v promise_v and_o this_o it_o shall_v appear_v to_o be_v among_o the_o many_o apparition_n which_o christ_n make_v betwixt_o his_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n to_o his_o disciple_n s._n john_n have_v record_v that_o once_o he_o come_v and_o stand_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o say_v peace_n be_v to_o you_o 20._o io._n 20._o and_o when_o he_o have_v say_v this_o he_o show_v they_o his_o hand_n and_o side_n and_o say_v again_o peace_n be_v to_o you_o as_o my_o father_n have_v send_v i_o i_o also_o do_v send_v you_o and_o he_o breathe_v upon_o they_o and_o say_v receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v they_o and_o who_o you_o shall_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v this_o be_v all_o which_o the_o evangelist_n mention_v to_o have_v pass_v in_o that_o solemn_a apparition_n which_o must_v therefore_o include_v some_o great_a mystery_n hence_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v a_o sacrament_n for_o where_o forgiune_n of_o sin_n be_v promise_v there_o grace_n be_v promise_v and_o this_o forgive_n and_o retain_v of_o sin_n be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o be_v practise_v by_o they_o who_o understande_v not_o the_o inward_a of_o man_n mind_n and_o conscience_n the_o penitent_a must_v declare_v his_o sin_n to_o they_o that_o they_o may_v know_v what_o and_o how_o to_o forgive_v or_o to_o retain_v they_o and_o so_o there_o be_v all_o that_o be_v include_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n to_o wit_v a_o outward_a sign_n both_o in_o the_o penitent_a confess_v and_o in_o the_o priest_n absolve_a and_o that_o outward_a sign_n institute_v of_o christ_n to_o give_v grace_n unto_o sanctification_n by_o which_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n be_v make_v manifest_a that_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n to_o forgive_v sin_n for_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o christ_n will_v appear_v in_o all_o those_o circumstance_n and_o mysterious_a caeremony_n give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o nothing_o but_o only_a to_o let_v they_o know_v that_o god_n can_v and_o do_v forgive_v sin_n the_o apostle_n esteem_v so_o high_o of_o this_o grace_n that_o they_o make_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n a_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o they_o have_v profess_v in_o the_o article_n before_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o they_o mean_v to_o make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o god_n can_v and_o do_v forgive_v sin_n after_o that_o they_o understand_v that_o themselves_o have_v power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n they_o be_v send_v as_o christ_n be_v send_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v so_o particular_o then_o to_o they_o and_o therefore_o they_o fear_v not_o to_o practice_v the_o forgive_n of_o sin_n priest_n of_o themselves_o have_v not_o power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n for_o no_o man_n of_o himself_o have_v that_o power_n they_o have_v it_o of_o god_n as_o the_o vicar_n and_n substitute_n of_o he_o who_o give_v it_o they_o god_n give_v power_n to_o priest_n as_o king_n do_v to_o judge_n judge_n represent_v the_o person_n of_o the_o king_n and_o priest_n represent_v the_o divine_a majesty_n judge_n must_v be_v inform_v and_o so_o must_v priest_n judge_n give_v sentence_n and_o their_o sentence_n be_v ratify_v by_o the_o king_n god_n give_v authority_n to_o priest_n and_o their_o sentence_n be_v ratify_v by_o he_o he_o that_o contemn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o judge_n contemn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n and_o he_o that_o contemn_v the_o priest_n authority_n contemn_v the_o divine_a majesty_n christ_n have_v make_v they_o his_o judge_n and_o set_v they_o in_o his_o own_o place_n with_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o to_o loose_v promise_v that_o what_o they_o do_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v ratify_v in_o heaven_n that_o christ_n do_v true_o give_v this_o power_n to_o the_o church_n his_o word_n be_v as_o plane_n as_o word_n use_v to_o be_v and_o that_o plane_n word_n may_v not_o be_v misconstrue_v he_o deliver_v they_o in_o such_o circumstance_n as_o may_v bind_v they_o as_o
allege_v against_o they_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o will_v tell_v they_o not_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o church_n hold_v the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a and_o his_o own_o reason_n will_v tell_v he_o that_o to_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o deny_v all_o scripture_n and_o to_o confound_v the_o order_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n tertul._n manichaeos_n tert._n l._n the_o coron_n militia_n c._n 3._o amb._n orat_fw-la pro_fw-la theod._n aug._n l._n 8._o de_fw-fr genes_n con_fw-mi manichaeos_n oblationes_fw-la pro_fw-la defunctis_fw-la facimus_fw-la we_o make_v offering_n for_o the_o dead_a s._n ambrose_n in_o his_o speech_n of_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n pray_v for_o he_o thou_o o_o lord_n give_v rest_n unto_o thy_o servant_n theodosius_n s._n august_n speak_v of_o he_o that_o die_v in_o sin_n say_v after_o this_o life_n he_o shall_v have_v either_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n or_o eternal_a fire_n and_o in_o psal_n 87._o in_o this_o life_n purge_v i_o and_o make_v i_o so_o that_o i_o may_v not_o need_v the_o purge_a fire_n the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n be_v so_o plane_o deliver_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n that_o caluin_n can_v not_o deny_v or_o conceal_v it_o but_o l._n 3._o instit_fw-la c._n 5._o §_o 10._o call_v it_o a_o most_o ancient_a observation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o say_v that_o the_o father_n as_o humane_a be_v deceive_v but_o who_o can_v endure_v this_o say_n in_o he_o be_v the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o both_o the_o church_n which_o be_v ancient_o and_o which_o be_v when_o caluin_n come_v into_o the_o world_n deceided_a and_o caluin_n not_o deceive_v shall_v caluin_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o correct_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o present_a observation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o shall_v any_o hazard_v his_o soul_n with_o caluin_n against_o they_o he_o ask_v what_o authority_n of_o scripture_n they_o have_v must_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v examine_v by_o he_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o shall_v not_o he_o be_v think_v a_o haeretike_n for_o this_o and_o to_o abuse_v the_o scripture_n in_o condemn_v of_o the_o church_n s._n augustine_n shall_v answer_v he_o mortuis_fw-la aug._n l._n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n we_o read_v that_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v for_o the_o dead_a but_o although_o in_o the_o ancient_a scripture_n it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v read_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v no_o small_a matter_n which_o be_v clear_a for_o this_o custom_n where_o in_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o to_o our_o lord_n god_n be_v power_v forth_o at_o his_o altar_n the_o commendation_n of_o the_o dead_a have_v its_o place_n s._n augustins_n argument_n be_v good_a in_o which_o he_o prove_v purgatory_n both_o hy_z the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n but_o if_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o caluin_n to_o who_o nothing_o will_v serve_v but_o his_o own_o will_n and_o word_n we_o will_v also_o produce_v his_o own_o word_n against_o he_o l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 2._o num_fw-la 3._o he_o say_v that_o without_o controversy_n nothing_o from_o the_o beginning_n until_o that_o age_n be_v change_v in_o doctrine_n to_o wit_n until_o the_o time_n of_o tertullian_n origen_n and_o augustine_n of_o who_o he_o be_v speak_v if_o therefore_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o time_n it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n ever_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o so_o caluin_n be_v condemn_v by_o scripture_n father_n church_n and_o by_o his_o own_o word_n and_o purgatory_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a apostolic_a doctrine_n there_o for_o pennance_n be_v right_o enjoin_v prayer_n may_v be_v say_v alm_n deed_n give_v indulgence_n grant_v and_o many_o voluntary_a affliction_n have_v be_v undergo_v by_o the_o saint_n and_o faithful_a of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o escape_v the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n which_o although_o they_o be_v but_o temporal_a yet_o they_o be_v most_o grievous_a and_o vehement_a more_o than_o can_v be_v speak_v and_o because_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n by_o many_o be_v not_o understand_v i_o will_v say_v something_o of_o they_o in_o this_o which_o be_v also_o their_o proper_a place_n a_o indulgence_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v a_o favourable_a remission_n or_o pardon_v of_o some_o due_a punishment_n such_o be_v the_o indulgence_n of_o the_o church_n either_o absolute_a remission_n without_o exchange_n or_o impose_v of_o any_o other_o task_n or_o exchange_n of_o a_o great_a into_o a_o lesser_a penalty_n the_o power_n of_o grant_v indulgence_n or_o absolve_a from_o punishment_n which_o be_v all_o one_o be_v grant_v by_o christ_n unto_o his_o apostle_n and_o especial_o to_o s._n peter_n to_o who_o he_o promise_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 16._o mat._n 16._o and_o tell_v he_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n what_o can_v be_v understand_v by_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o word_n follow_v but_o power_n so_o to_o open_a heaven_n gate_n as_o to_o take_v away_o all_o that_o hinder_v for_o enter_v in_o at_o they_o to_o wit_n sin_n and_o punishment_n he_o give_v also_o the_o like_a authority_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n 18._o mat._n 18._o if_o whatsoever_o they_o lose_v be_v loose_v than_o punishment_n loose_v by_o they_o on_o earth_n be_v loose_v also_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o good_a connexion_n in_o those_o word_n if_o they_o be_v not_o understand_v of_o absolve_a as_o well_o from_o punishment_n as_o from_o sin_n now_o if_o any_o ask_v how_o it_o can_v be_v that_o sin_n of_o which_o the_o divine_a justice_n require_v so_o much_o satisfaction_n shall_v be_v satisfy_v for_o with_o so_o little_a as_o some_o indulgence_n require_v and_o some_o indulgence_n require_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o be_v do_v for_o the_o gain_n of_o they_o he_o may_v understande_v that_o indulgence_n or_o pardon_n of_o punishment_n be_v never_o grant_v but_o full_a satisfaction_n be_v make_v to_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n for_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n a_o treasury_n of_o satisfaction_n so_o great_a that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v exhaust_v by_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n there_o be_v in_o this_o treasury_n the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n infinite_o more_o than_o all_o the_o sin_n in_o the_o world_n can_v require_v there_o be_v also_o the_o good_a work_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n that_o have_v nothing_o of_o her_o own_o to_o satisfy_v for_o there_o be_v the_o good_a work_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o many_o other_o who_o work_n be_v much_o more_o satisfactory_a than_o their_o own_o sin_n need_v and_o may_v be_v apply_v by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o those_o that_o stand_v need_n of_o they_o for_o the_o church_n be_v a_o body_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o it_o have_v a_o communication_n and_o participation_n of_o good_a work_n with_o one_o another_o as_o we_o profess_v in_o the_o creed_n say_v i_o believe_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o the_o psalmist_n say_v 1._o ps_n 118._o col._n 1._o i_o be_o partaker_n of_o all_o that_o fear_v thou_o and_o s._n paul_n i_o now_o rejoice_v in_o suffer_v for_o you_o and_o do_v accomplish_v those_o thing_n that_o want_v of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n in_o my_o flesh_n for_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n he_o do_v not_o fulfil_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n for_o any_o defect_n or_o want_n which_o be_v in_o they_o but_o that_o by_o his_o suffering_n the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v apply_v actual_o to_o the_o colossian_n as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o suffrage_n and_o good_a work_n which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n for_o other_o and_o by_o they_o their_o punishment_n be_v full_o satisfy_v for_o if_o any_o ask_v why_o the_o pope_n only_o and_o bishop_n give_v indulgence_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n before_o allege_v be_v speak_v only_o to_o s._n peter_n who_o be_v to_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o to_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v at_o first_o the_o only_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v our_o rule_n in_o all_o thing_n have_v be_v allwais_o for_o the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n and_o not_o for_o priest_n to_o grant_v indulgence_n s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o church_n say_v if_o the_o church_n through_o out_o the_o world_n frequent_v any_o of_o these_o thing_n to_o dispute_v of_o
the_o law_n of_o god_n last_o we_o pray_v for_o all_o people_n even_o our_o enemy_n the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n jew_n turk_n and_o haeretik_n to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o we_o pray_v not_o only_o for_o the_o live_n but_o also_o for_o the_o dead_a of_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n as_o a_o devotion_n both_o charitable_a to_o they_o and_o profitable_a to_o ourselves_o it_o be_v a_o deed_n of_o charity_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o because_o they_o can_v not_o pray_v for_o themselves_o and_o it_o be_v profitable_a to_o we_o because_o beside_o the_o reward_n of_o our_o own_o good_a work_n we_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v their_o intercession_n both_o now_o in_o purgatory_n and_o afterward_o when_o they_o come_v to_o heaven_n for_o they_o be_v not_o like_o the_o cupbearer_n of_o pharaoh_n who_o prosperous_a thing_n succeed_v to_o he_o forget_v his_o friend_n of_o who_o in_o prison_n he_o have_v receive_v comfort_n now_o let_v we_o see_v to_o who_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v we_o pray_v to_o god_n as_o to_o the_o supreme_a power_n and_o first_o author_n of_o all_o benefit_n acknowledge_v all_o goodness_n to_o proceed_v from_o he_o and_o therefore_o prayer_n in_o the_o apocalypse_n be_v assimilate_v unto_o incense_n and_o be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n because_o it_o respect_v god_n as_o the_o source_n and_o first_o author_n of_o goodness_n we_o pray_v also_o to_o our_o bless_a lady_n and_o to_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n as_o the_o friend_n of_o god_n for_o their_o prayer_n and_o intercession_n to_o he_o but_o a_o haeretike_n will_v present_o object_v that_o if_o prayer_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n how_o do_v we_o pray_v to_o the_o saint_n all_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n our_o prayer_n indeed_o may_v be_v call_v and_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n because_o we_o either_o express_o confess_v the_o supreme_a power_n of_o god_n or_o implicit_o acknowledge_v it_o by_o all_o prayer_n the_o prayer_n which_o we_o make_v immediate_o to_o god_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n because_o by_o they_o immediate_o and_o direct_o we_o acknowledge_v his_o supreme_a and_o divine_a power_n the_o prayer_n which_o we_o make_v by_o the_o mediation_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v also_o sacrifice_n in_o their_o kind_n because_o mediate_o and_o indirect_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o in_o that_o final_o they_o tend_v unto_o god_n by_o the_o saint_n pray_v to_o he_o as_o we_o desire_v the_o prayer_n which_o we_o make_v to_o saint_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n as_o they_o tend_v unto_o god_n as_o they_o tend_v unto_o the_o saint_n they_o be_v not_o sacrifice_n because_o they_o acknowledge_v not_o the_o supreme_a and_o divine_a power_n to_o be_v in_o they_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a heresy_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o deny_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n maintain_v by_o vigilantius_n and_o other_o haeretik_n vigil_n hier._n count_v vigil_n and_o of_o purpose_n refute_v by_o s._n hierome_n and_o other_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n but_o time_n which_o be_v the_o abolish_a of_o all_o heresy_n have_v abolish_v this_o and_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o suruive_v all_o time_n have_v suruive_v this_o heresy_n and_o bury_v it_o in_o the_o oblivion_n of_o man_n until_o some_o unruly_a spirit_n of_o these_o late_a year_n who_o will_v be_v rule_v by_o no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n rake_v up_o this_o heresy_n out_o of_o the_o dirt_n and_o set_v it_o on_o foot_n again_o but_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n brief_o make_v good_a by_o scripture_n counsel_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o by_o reason_n turn_v to_o the_o 48._o chapter_n of_o genesis_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v there_o the_o patriarch_n jacob_n blessing_n the_o child_n of_o joseph_n and_o invoke_v the_o angel_n and_o saint_n upon_o they_o in_o these_o word_n 48._o gen._n 48._o the_o angel_n that_o deliver_v i_o from_o all_o evil_n bless_v these_o childrën_n and_o be_v my_o name_n call_v upon_o they_o the_o name_n also_o of_o my_o father_n abraham_n and_o isaac_n here_o this_o holy_a patriarch_n after_o that_o he_o have_v twice_o call_v upon_o god_n then_o invoke_v his_o angel_n and_o the_o saint_n abraham_n and_o isaac_n who_o as_o yet_o be_v not_o in_o perfect_a glory_n and_o if_o they_o only_o depart_v as_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n may_v be_v pray_v unto_o before_o that_o they_o have_v the_o perfect_a glory_n of_o heaven_n with_o much_o more_o reason_n the_o saint_n of_o god_n may_v now_o be_v pray_v unto_o when_o they_o be_v in_o that_o perfect_a state_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v understande_v the_o angel_n who_o he_o there_o call_v on_o to_o be_v any_o other_o than_o his_o own_o angel_n guardian_n shall_v contradict_v the_o common_a interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n who_o prove_v by_o this_o place_n that_o we_o have_v every_o one_o a_o angel_n guardian_n depute_v to_o defend_v we_o and_o shall_v show_v but_o little_a reverence_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o he_o dare_v to_o delude_v with_o such_o vain_a gloss_n of_o his_o own_o head_n but_o to_o be_v brief_a i_o will_v say_v no_o more_o but_o that_o s._n paul_n pray_v to_o the_o live_n for_o their_o prayer_n therefore_o with_o more_o reason_n we_o may_v pray_v to_o the_o saint_n for_o their_o prayer_n when_o they_o be_v in_o glory_n but_o of_o this_o afterward_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nyce_n which_o be_v receive_v by_o our_o enemy_n declare_v express_o for_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n cry_v out_o to_o bless_a flavianus_n martyr_n act_n 11._o flavianus_n that_o be_v dead_a be_v yet_o live_v a_o martyr_n let_v he_o pray_v for_o us._n the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n ought_v to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o this_o the_o ancient_a lyturgys_n of_o the_o church_n service_n the_o roman_a which_o s._n peter_n make_v that_o of_o jerusalem_n which_o s._n jame_v make_v that_o of_o the_o aethiopian_n which_o s._n matthew_n make_v that_o of_o milan_n which_o s._n barnaby_n and_o s._n ambrose_n make_v and_o that_o which_o s._n john_n chrysostome_n make_v all_o of_o they_o make_v a_o devout_a commemoration_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n and_o implore_v her_o intercession_n as_o for_o the_o sentence_n of_o these_o and_o other_o holy_a father_n they_o be_v as_o plane_n as_o my_o word_n now_o be_v for_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o they_o have_v as_o earnest_o defend_v it_o as_o we_o now_o do_v s._n athanasius_n ser_n de_fw-fr deipara_n speak_v of_o our_o b._n lady_n say_v all_o the_o quire_n of_o angel_n be_v incessant_o sing_v that_o glorious_a hymn_n aue_fw-la gratia_fw-la plena_fw-la dominus_fw-la tecum_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o we_o the_o terrestrial_a hierarchy_n of_o man_n salute_v thou_o say_v hail_n full_a of_o grace_n pray_v for_o we_o o_o lady_n o_o mistress_n o_o queen_n o_o mother_n of_o god_n what_o more_o can_v any_o catholic_a have_v say_v or_o desire_v of_o s._n athanasius_n then_o to_o hear_v he_o praise_v our_o bless_a lady_n and_o pray_v to_o she_o in_o the_o very_a same_o term_n which_o himself_o now_o use_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n steph._n ser._n 1._o de_fw-fr s._n steph._n s._n augustine_n if_o stevan_n be_v hear_v when_o he_o pray_v for_o those_o that_o stone_v he_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v he_o be_v hear_v when_o he_o pray_v for_o those_o that_o pray_v devout_o to_o he_o if_o s._n athanasius_n and_o s._n augustine_n shall_v appear_v now_o to_o the_o world_n to_o decide_v this_o controversy_n and_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o but_o these_o word_n over_o again_o who_o will_v not_o think_v that_o the_o controversy_n be_v end_v and_o sentence_n give_v for_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n but_o their_o testimony_n will_v not_o satisfy_v our_o obstinate_a enemy_n who_o confess_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n teach_v invocation_n of_o saint_n but_o accuse_v they_o of_o error_n for_o it_o o_o haeretical_a pride_n shall_v one_o single_a man_n disobey_v all_o the_o church_n that_o be_v then_o in_o the_o world_n and_o stand_v also_o at_o defiance_n with_o the_o holy_a and_o ancient_a father_n and_o shall_v any_o man_n show_v that_o contempt_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n as_o to_o follow_v luther_n who_o come_v but_o in_o the_o last_o age_n or_o caluin_n who_o come_v after_o he_o rather_o than_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o then_o be_v when_o they_o come_v and_o also_o rather_o than_o those_o learned_a saint_n who_o the_o christian_n world_n have_v hold_v in_o reverence_n for_o these_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n final_o this_o be_v also_o manifest_a by_o natural_a reason_n which_o dictate_v that_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o friend_n and_o favourite_n of_o prince_n may_v with_o prudence_n be_v desire_v for_o
use_v they_o three_o they_o object_v that_o our_o b._n lady_n be_v far_o distant_a from_o we_o and_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o salute_v one_o at_o such_o a_o distance_n but_o this_o be_v no_o absurdity_n because_o distance_n of_o place_n hinder_v not_o the_o intelligence_n of_o glorious_a soul_n it_o be_v indeed_o absurd_a foreman_n here_o upon_o earth_n to_o salute_v one_o another_o in_o absence_n because_o in_o absence_n they_o understande_v not_o but_o if_o they_o understand_v it_o be_v ●ather_o absurd_a to_o hinder_v their_o communication_n when_o it_o be_v for_o a_o good_a end_n the_o bless_a virgin_n understand_v in_o heaven_n our_o devotion_n upon_o earth_n for_o although_o in_o body_n she_o be_v absent_a from_o we_o yet_o in_o spirit_n sheis_n present_a with_o we_o as_o elizeus_fw-la be_v absent_a in_o body_n from_o his_o servant_n but_o be_v present_a in_o spirit_n with_o he_o and_o see_v all_o that_o pass_v betwixt_o he_o and_o naaman_n and_o tell_v he_o afterward_o 4.5_o reg._n 4.5_o be_v not_o my_o hart_n present_a when_o the_o man_n return_v out_o of_o his_o chair_n to_o meet_v thou_o s._n paul_n also_o write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n that_o he_o be_v absent_a in_o body_n 1.5_o cor._n 1.5_o but_o present_a in_o spirit_n with_o they_o but_o the_o bless_a virgin_n see_v by_o the_o light_n of_o glory_n the_o devotion_n of_o those_o that_o pray_v to_o she_o and_o be_v much_o more_o present_a with_o they_o then_o elizeus_fw-la or_o s._n paul_n be_v whilst_o they_o live_v upon_o earth_n absent_a from_o they_o four_o they_o object_n against_o the_o often_o repeat_v of_o the_o hail_n mary_n that_o god_n hear_v as_o well_o at_o once_o as_o at_o many_o time_n but_o to_o repeat_v it_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o time_n to_o what_o purpose_n yes_o for_o many_o good_a purpose_n first_o to_o pray_v with_o more_o fervour_n second_o to_o obtain_v by_o persevere_v in_o prayer_n that_o which_o at_o first_o be_v not_o allwais_o obtain_v three_o to_o employ_v ourselves_o in_o the_o consideration_n of_o holy_a mystery_n such_o as_o i_o have_v declare_v to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o rosary_n christ_n have_v deliver_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la as_o a_o pattern_n of_o prayer_n show_v they_o also_o how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v use_v to_o wit_n with_o much_o earnestness_n and_o importunity_n not_o present_o desist_v from_o prayer_n when_o we_o obtain_v not_o our_o desire_n but_o persevere_v still_o to_o ask_v for_o this_o he_o immediate_o annex_v the_o parabole_fw-la of_o a_o man_n who_o ask_v to_o borrow_v bread_n at_o first_o it_o be_v deny_v he_o but_o persevere_v to_o ask_v by_o his_o importunity_n he_o obtain_v as_o many_o loaf_n as_o he_o need_v and_o he_o do_v not_o only_o teach_v this_o by_o word_n but_o also_o by_o example_n pray_v with_o much_o fervour_n and_o repeat_v in_o the_o garden_n the_o same_o prayer_n over_o 26._o mat._n 26._o and_o over_o and_o over_o again_o as_o s._n matthew_n have_v note_v he_o be_v hear_v as_o well_o at_o the_o first_o as_o at_o the_o last_o but_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o to_o persevere_v in_o prayer_n and_o that_o god_n grant_v for_o our_o importunity_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v at_o last_o the_o comfort_n of_o a_o angel_n appear_v to_o he_o which_o at_o first_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o he_o have_v the_o blind_a man_n sit_v by_o the_o way_n when_o he_o hear_v the_o noise_n of_o the_o multitude_n and_o understand_v that_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n be_v pass_v by_o cry_v out_o jesus_n son_n of_o david_n have_v mercy_n upon_o i_o 18._o luc._n 18._o and_o when_o they_o rebuke_v he_o he_o cry_v much_o more_o son_n of_o david_n have_v mercy_n on_o i_o christ_n hear_v he_o as_o well_o at_o the_o first_o as_o at_o the_o second_o time_n yet_o at_o first_o he_o grant_v not_o his_o desire_n because_o he_o will_v have_v he_o to_o persevere_v ask_v that_o he_o may_v commend_v his_o faith_n grant_v for_o his_o perseverance_n and_o propose_v he_o as_o a_o example_n to_o teach_v we_o how_o to_o pray_v the_o holy_a kingin_n the_o 137._o psalm_n repeat_v in_o every_o verse_n the_o very_a same_o word_n over_o again_o so_o that_o there_o be_v 27._o verse_n the_o same_o thing_n be_v repeat_v 27._o time_n and_o take_v up_o about_o half_a of_o the_o psalm_n a_o haeretike_n may_v ask_v what_o need_n there_o be_v of_o so_o much_o repeat_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o who_o i_o answer_v that_o david_n be_v a_o holy_a man_n according_a to_o the_o hart_n of_o god_n and_o will_v sing_v the_o divine_a praise_n with_o much_o fervour_n of_o spirit_n repeat_v the_o same_o word_n over_o and_o over_o again_o many_o time_n and_o so_o we_o repeat_v the_o praise_n of_o the_o b_o virgin_n and_o double_a and_o redouble_v our_o prayer_n to_o she_o christ_n say_v it_o behove_v allwais_o to_o pray_v 1.5_o luc._n 8._o thes_n 1.5_o and_o not_o to_o be_v weary_a and_o s._n paul_n bid_v pray_v without_o intermission_n but_o we_o can_v not_o allwais_o pray_v new_a prayer_n if_o the_o prayer_n be_v a_o good_a prayer_n the_o more_o we_o repeat_v it_o the_o more_o love_n we_o show_v and_o more_o desire_n of_o obtain_v and_o that_o which_o be_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n can_v be_v ask_v too_o often_o until_o we_o obtain_v it_o if_o it_o be_v good_a to_o say_v a_o good_a prayer_n once_o every_o month_n it_o be_v better_a to_o say_v it_o once_o a_o week_n and_o if_o it_o be_v good_a to_o say_v it_o every_o week_n it_o be_v better_a to_o say_v it_o every_o day_n and_o better_a yet_o to_o say_v it_o every_o hour_n so_o that_o we_o hinder_v not_o more_o necessary_a employment_n 28._o l._n 4._o c._n 28._o lactantius_n who_o live_v about_o a_o thousand_o and_o three_o hundred_o year_n since_o and_o be_v master_n to_o constantine_n the_o great_a have_v a_o discourse_n of_o purpose_n to_o commend_v the_o often_o repeat_v of_o the_o aue_fw-la mary_n five_o they_o object_v that_o it_o taste_v of_o superstition_n to_o observe_v such_o a_o number_n of_o prayer_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o taste_v of_o superstition_n to_o none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v out_o of_o taste_n with_o pious_a thing_n and_o with_o the_o devotion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n what_o superstition_n be_v it_o in_o saint_n bartholomew_n and_o in_o saint_n paul_n the_o ermite_n to_o observe_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o prayer_n every_o day_n a_o haeretike_n may_v call_v it_o superstition_n in_o christ_n to_o choose_v twelve_o apostle_n correspond_v to_o the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n or_o to_o pray_v thrice_o the_o same_o prayer_n in_o the_o garden_n for_o that_o the_o number_n of_o three_o be_v often_o use_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o signify_v the_o firmness_n and_o stability_n of_o any_o thing_n or_o in_o a_o catholic_a to_o say_v three_o pater_n noster_n in_o honour_n of_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n or_o sieve_n in_o honour_n of_o the_o five_o wound_n of_o our_o lord_n all_o which_o be_v as_o much_o superstitious_a as_o to_o observe_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o the_o aue_fw-la marys_n in_o the_o rosary_n and_o much_o more_o superstitious_a do_v it_o outward_o appear_v for_o josue_n to_o command_v twelve_o man_n to_o take_v up_o twelve_o stone_n out_o of_o lordan_n and_o to_o lay_v down_o other_o twelve_o in_o their_o place_n to_o signify_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n then_o to_o say_v a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o aue_fw-la marys_n in_o imitation_n of_o david_n hundred_o and_o fifty_o psalm_n yet_o who_o dare_v say_v that_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n be_v superstitious_a we_o must_v not_o go_v by_o the_o outtward_a appearance_n but_o by_o the_o intrinsical_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o malice_n of_o thing_n christ_n must_v not_o be_v judge_v a_o sinner_n because_o he_o have_v the_o outward_a habit_n of_o a_o sinner_n the_o reason_n why_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n be_v superstitious_a be_v because_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o they_o but_o which_o have_v conexion_n and_o proportion_n to_o a_o good_a end_n for_o which_o it_o be_v intend_v and_o therefore_o to_o observe_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o prayer_n in_o relation_n to_o some_o holy_a mystery_n not_o any_o of_o the_o action_n above_o mention_v be_v in_o the_o species_n of_o superstition_n nor_o have_v the_o malice_n of_o it_o because_o they_o have_v proportion_n to_o a_o good_a end_n which_o be_v to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o devotion_n by_o the_o representation_n of_o pious_a thing_n thus_o you_o see_v that_o the_o devotion_n of_o the_o rosary_n be_v well_o ground_v upon_o good_a and_o holy_a mistery_n and_o that_o all_o objection_n against_o it_o be_v vain_a and_o groundless_a as_o all_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o be_v object_v against_o the_o bless_a virgin_n honour_n blessing_n be_v give_v to_o bead_n
and_o in_o another_o place_n slack_v not_o to_o be_v convert_v to_o our_o lord_n and_o differre_fw-la not_o from_o day_n to_o day_n 5._o eccl._n 5._o for_o his_o wrath_n shall_v come_v sudden_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o vengeance_n he_o will_v destroy_v thou_o let_v bold_a praesumptuous_a man_n remember_v these_o word_n and_o learn_v to_o fear_v god_n dear_a reader_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v as_o thou_o have_v a_o soul_n which_o must_v last_v for_o ever_o apply_v this_o book_n to_o the_o good_a of_o thy_o soul_n so_o as_o shall_v most_o concern_v it_o for_o a_o happy_a eternity_n i_o excuse_v no_o fault_n my_o goodwill_n shall_v mend_v all_o god_n can_v and_o i_o hope_v will_v honour_v himself_o even_o in_o my_o fault_n combine_v thou_o with_o i_o that_o we_o may_v honour_v he_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n i_o submit_v all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o this_o book_n and_o all_o whatsoever_o i_o shall_v sa●●r_o think_v as_o long_o as_o i_o live_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n a_o sum_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n expound_v in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n qvaestion_n what_o obligation_n have_v christian_n to_o learn●_n the_o christian_a doctrine_n answer_n every_o christian_a be_v bind_v under_o a_o mortal_a sin_n to_o know_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n 7._o q._n what_o be_v faith_n a._n faith_n be_v a_o supernatural_a light_n and_o gift_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v and_o firm_o adhare_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n 11._o q._n make_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros._n a._n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a g●ost_n amen_n 49._o q._n what_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n a._n the_o sign_n of_o the_o cr●●_n be_v a_o profession_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n 51._o q._n how_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n a_o profession_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n 51_o a._n because_o in_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n we_o profess_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o of_o the_o incarnation_n which_o be_v the_o two_o chief_a mystery_n of_o the_o ch●stian_a faith_n 51_o q._n what_o be_v the_o b._n trinity_n a._n the_o b._n trinity_n be_v god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n in_o three_o distinct_a person_n 51_o q._n what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n a._n we_o mean_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v incarnate_v that_o be_v become_v man_n to_o redeem_v us._n 52_o q._n say_v the_o creed_n a._n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v he_o descend_v into_o hell_n the_o three_o day_n he_o arise_v again_o from_o death_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v we_o all_o both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a catholic_a curch_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n life_n everlasting_a amen_o 76._o q_o who_o be_v christ_n a._n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n incarnate_v true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n our_o redeemer_n judge_n and_o glorifyer_n 109._o q._n what_o do_v we_o get_v by_o christ_n redeem_v we_o a._n we_o get_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o acceptance_n of_o our_o good_a work_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n apply_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n 156._o q._n what_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n a._n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o congregation_n of_o all_o faithful_a people_n and_o pastor_n unite_v together_o as_o a_o body_n with_o its_o head_n 176._o q._n give_v i_o a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o true_a and_o all_o false_a church_n a._n the_o true_a church_n keep_v allwais_o in_o union_n and_o obedience_n to_o its_o head_n and_o pastor_n all_o false_a church_n begin_v in_o dissension_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o head_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n 214._o q._n say_v the_o seven_o sacrament_n a._n baptism_n confirmation_n eucharist_n penance_n extreme_a unction_n holy_a order_n matrimony_n 281._o q_o what_o be_v a_o sacrament_n a._n a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o outward_a sign_n which_o cause_v grace_n in_o us._n 266._o q._n what_o be_v grace_n a_o grace_n be_v a_o supernatural_a gift_n which_o make_v we_o grateful_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n 268._o q._n what_o be_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o eucharist_n a._n the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o eucharist_n be_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n under_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 298._o q._n it_o shere_v any_o bread_n or_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n a._n no_n it_o seem_v but_o so_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v convert_v at_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n into_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n 305._o q._n what_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n a._n the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n be_v that_o by_o which_o we_o receive_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n in_o confession_n 322._o q._n say_v the_o ten_o commandment_n a._n thou_o shall_v not_o have_v strange_a god_n before_o i_o thou_o shall_v not_o take_v the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a remember_v thou_o keep_v holy_a the_o sabaoth_a day_n honour_n thy_o father_n and_o mother_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n thou_o shall_v not_o bear_v false_a witness_n against_o thy_o neighbour_n thou_o shall_v not_o desire_v thy_o neighbour_n wife_n thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v thy_o neighbour_n good_n 378_o q._n say_v the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la a._n our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n hallow_a b●_n thy_o name_n thy_o kingdom_n come_v thy_o will_v be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n and_o forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n as_o we_o forgive_v they_o their_o trespass_n against_o us._n and_o lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n but_o deliver_v we_o from_o evil_a amen_o 449._o q._n say_v the_o hail_n mary_n a._n haile_o marry_o full_a of_o grace_n our_o lord_n be_v with_o thou_o bless_a be_v thou_o among_o woman_n bless_a be_v the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o womb_n jesus_n holy_a mary_n mother_n of_o god_n pray_v for_o we_o sinner_n now_o and_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o of_o our_o death_n amen_n 509._o q._n what_o be_v the_o mass_n a._n the_o mass_n be_v the_o continual_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o his_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n be_v offer_v under_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 576._o q._n say_v the_o five_o chief_a precept_n of_o the_o church_n a._n to_o fast_o fast_v day_n to_o keep_v holy_a day_n to_o confess_v our_o sin_n to_o our_o ordinary_a pastor_n or_o to_o another_o with_o his_o leave_n at_o least_o once_o a_o year_n to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n at_o easter_n time_n to_o pay_v tithe_n 640._o q._n how_o do_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n oblige_v a._n the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n oblige_v under_o a_o mortal_a sin_n 641._o q._n what_o be_v sin_n a._n sin_n be_v that_o by_o which_o we_o depart_v from_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o be_v separate_v from_o god_n 673._o q._n ho_o many_o kind_n of_o sin_n be_v there_o a._n there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o sin_n original_a and_o actual_a sin_n 715._o q._n what_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o original_a and_o actual_a sin_n a._n original_a sin_n be_v that_o which_o we_o be_v bear_v in_o actual_a sin_n be_v that_o which_o ●e_v commit_v 615._o q._n how_o many_o kind_n of_o sin_n do_v we_o commit_v a._n we_o committee_n two_o kind_n of_o sin_n mortal_a sin_n and_o venial_a sin_n 717_o q._n what_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o mortal_n and_o venial_a sin_n a._n mortal_a sin_n quite_o deprive_v we_o of_o god_n grace_n venial_a sin_n only_o lessen_v and_o deminish_v the_o fervour_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o us._n 717._o the_o first_o discourse_n of_o the_o education_n and_o instruction_n of_o child_n and_o of_o the_o obligation_n which_o all_o have_v to_o learn_v the_o christian_n doctrine_n i_o intend_v now_o to_o speak_v of_o two_o thing_n first_o unto_o all_o those_o who_o have_v charge_n over_o child_n and_o especial_o to_o parent_n to_o commend_v unto_o they_o the_o care_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o their_o good_a education_n and_o instruction_n second_o to_o declare_v unto_o all_o the_o
call_v priest_n angel_n say_v the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n and_o from_o his_o mouth_n thou_o shall_v require_v the_o law_n 2._o mal._n 2._o because_o he_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o our_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o angel_n be_v the_o treasurer_n of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n who_o open_v they_o in_o their_o message_n to_o mankind_n as_o god_n will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v impart_v unto_o we_o so_o priest_n have_v the_o keep_n of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n and_o must_v deliver_v they_o to_o the_o people_n as_o they_o need_v they_o and_o therefore_o the_o people_n must_v ask_v of_o they_o and_o adhaere_fw-la to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o be_v deliver_v by_o they_o yet_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n be_v a_o mystery_n which_o be_v keep_v even_o from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o priest_n although_o angel_n witness_n s._n augustine_n who_o be_v a_o priest_n and_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o angelical_a hierarchy_n of_o priest_n trin._n b._n trin._n for_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n yet_o he_o relate_v of_o himself_o how_o that_o be_v on_o a_o time_n walk_v on_o the_o sea_n shore_n study_v upon_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n he_o see_v a_o child_n who_o have_v make_v a_o little_a pit_n in_o the_o sand_n be_v lave_v with_o a_o spoon_n the_o water_n of_o the_o sea_n into_o volus_fw-la aug._n ad_fw-la volus_fw-la that_o little_a pit_n s._n augustine_n earnest_o observe_v he_o ask_v he_o what_o he_o mean_v do_v he_o think_v to_o empty_v the_o main_a ocean_n into_o that_o little_a pit_n yes_o reply_v the_o child_n as_o soon_o will_v i_o bring_v the_o ocean_n into_o this_o compass_n as_o thou_o with_o thy_o understanding_n shall_v comprehend_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n by_o which_o he_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v a_o messenger_n of_o god_n send_v unto_o he_o to_o humble_v he_o and_o to_o let_v he_o know_v that_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n be_v above_o humane_a understanding_n we_o see_v by_o reason_n that_o god_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n must_v needs_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n incomprehensible_a infinite_a in_o power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n and_o therefore_o for_o man_n to_o think_v to_o comprehend_v god_n be_v to_o contradict_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o reason_n and_o above_o lucifer_n pride_n to_o think_v to_o be_v equal_a with_o he_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o we_o to_o think_v that_o god_n be_v god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o supreme_a and_o infinite_a perfection_n which_o putt_v bound_n and_o limit_n to_o the_o perfection_n of_o all_o other_o thing_n who_o as_o he_o have_v set_v a_o term_n of_o time_n to_o our_o life_n so_o have_v he_o also_o limit_v our_o understanding_n and_o we_o can_v no_o more_o by_o our_o own_o power_n exceed_v those_o limit_n than_o we_o can_v by_o our_o own_o power_n escape_v death_n great_a be_v our_o lord_n great_a be_v his_o strength_n 146._o psa_fw-la 146._o and_o of_o his_o wisdom_n there_o be_v no_o number_n if_o we_o will_v build_v upon_o a_o sure_a ground_n let_v we_o cleave_v to_o that_o rock_n which_o christ_n have_v leave_v and_o say_v as_o our_o creed_n teach_v we_o i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n be_v believe_v as_o author_n common_o show_v by_o diverse_a place_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n although_o the_o prophet_n have_v deliver_v it_o for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o obscure_a term_n to_o the_o israëlit_n lest_o they_o who_o live_v among_o idolatrous_a nation_n and_o be_v of_o themselves_o prone_a to_o idolatry_n shall_v take_v occasion_n by_o the_o trinity_n of_o person_n to_o believe_v in_o many_o go_n but_o idolatry_n be_v to_o be_v so_o much_o subvert_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o bu●_n little_a or_o no_o danger_n of_o it_o among_o christian_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n be_v deliver_v to_o u●_n plane_o and_o more_o express_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o departure_n from_o his_o disciple_n command_v the_o express_a profession_n of_o it_o to_o be_v make_v in_o baptism_n when_o we_o be_v make_v christian_n 28._o mat._n 28._o go_v therefore_o teach_v you_o all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 1.5_o io._n 1.5_o and_o again_o there_o be_v three_o that_o give_v testimony_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o genebrard_n show_v by_o diverse_a place_n out_o of_o the_o ancient_a philosopher_n that_o the_o gentile_n by_o their_o familiarity_n and_o commerce_n with_o the_o jew_n come_v to_o hear_v and_o to_o write_v of_o the_o b_o trinity_n but_o the_o modern_a jew_n which_o now_o be_v earnest_o oppose_v it_o be_v fall_v in_o this_o point_n as_o they_o be_v also_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n which_o their_o forefather_n profess_v that_o which_o we_o believe_v of_o this_o mystery_n be_v to_o acknowledge_v a_o unity_n of_o godhead_n essence_n and_o nature_n in_o the_o trinity_n of_o perfon_n god_n the_o father_n be_v the_o same_o god_n as_o god_n the_o son_n god_n the_o son_n be_v the_o same_o god_n as_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o they_o be_v not_o three_o god_n but_o one_o only_a god_n the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n nor_o be_v the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n the_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o they_o be_v three_o real_o destinct_a and_o different_a person_n this_o we_o intend_v to_o profess_v when_o we_o say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o also_o paofesse_v in_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n in_o that_o we_o make_v a_o cros_n to_o remember_v and_o acknowledge_v the_o love_n of_o god_n with_o which_o he_o so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n to_o become_v man_n 3._o joan._n 3._o and_o to_o redeem_v we_o on_o the_o cros._n god_n have_v create_v man_n in_o a_o happy_a state_n in_o paradise_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n environ_v on_o all_o side_n with_o unspeakable_a pleasure_n and_o in_o that_o pleasant_a way_n be_v conduct_v he_o to_o the_o heavenly_a glory_n but_o man_n sin_v lose_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n be_v debar_v of_o that_o bless_a state_n which_o he_o shall_v have_v obtain_v and_o be_v then_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n he_o can_v sin_v still_o more_o and_o more_o bu●_n he_o can_v do_v no_o good_a work_n sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v for_o his_o sin_n and_o to_o be_v restore_v again_o to_o the_o divine_a grace_n by_o it_o god_n of_o his_o justice_n require_v satisfaction_n but_o no_o man_n not_o creature_n be_v able_a and_o of_o sufficient_a worth_n to_o make_v it_o and_o the_o divine_a nature_n not_o be_v subject_a to_o make_v sarisfaction_n in_o in_o itself_o it_o be_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o unite_v our_o weakness_n to_o his_o power_n and_o our_o nature_n to_o his_o divine_a nature_n in_o the_o incarnation_n of_o his_o son_n that_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v unite_v to_o his_o divine_a person_n may_v by_o that_o person_n be_v so_o dignify_v that_o it_o can_v make_v worthy_a satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n that_o shall_v apply_v unto_o themselves_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o passion_n this_o be_v the_o mystery_n which_o be_v reveal_v unto_o abraham_n and_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n which_o many_o king_n and_o prophet_n desire_v to_o see_v and_o which_o fill_v the_o hart_n of_o abraham_n so_o full_a of_o comfort_n that_o he_o laugh_v for_o joy_n to_o hear_v and_o think_v of_o it_o by_o this_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o patriarch_n be_v multiply_v like_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o like_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v number_v and_o all_o kindred_n be_v bless_v in_o it_o to_o wit_n as_o christ_n come_v of_o their_o seed_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o who_o passion_n heaven_n be_v replenish_v with_o saint_n more_o glorious_a than_o the_o star_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o faithful_a christian_n have_v spring_v from_o he_o dil●●ed_v to_o the_o west_n and_o to_o the_o east_n and_o to_o the_o north_n and_o to_o the_o south_n not_o to_o be_v number_v all_o whosoever_o be_v save_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n our_o saviour_n we_o can_v never_o sufficient_o acknowledge_v the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o this_o mystery_n by_o it_o man_n be_v so_o exalt_v as_o to_o become_v the_o divine_a spouse_n by_o
think_v will_v the_o devil_n do_v to_o see_v the_o sword_n with_o which_o christ_n disarm_v he_o and_o cut_v of_o his_o head_n be_v not_o thou_o then_o ashamed_a of_o so_o great_a a_o good_a lest_o christ_n be_v ashamed_a of_o thou_o when_o he_o come_v in_o his_o majesty_n thou_o shall_v see_v then_o this_o sign_n bear_v before_o christ_n as_o bright_a as_o the_o sun_n the_o cros_n shall_v go_v before_o he_o and_o shall_v speak_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n for_o he_o to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o want_v on_o his_o part_n this_o sign_n both_o now_o and_o of_o old_a do_v open_v the_o door_n that_o be_v shut_v be_v have_v extinguish_v poison_n it_o have_v tame_v wild_a beast_n it_o have_v cure_v the_o mortal_a sting_n of_o serpent_n the_o cros_n have_v convert_v the_o world_n it_o have_v put_v away_o fear_n and_o bring_v the_o truth_n it_o have_v turn_v earth_n into_o heaven_n man_n into_o angel_n death_n into_o sleep_n it_o have_v bring_v all_o our_o enemy_n down_o to_o the_o ground_n if_o a_o gentle_a shall_v say_v to_o thou_o adore_v not_o he_o that_o be_v crucify_a be_v not_o afraid_a with_o a_o clear_a voice_n and_o countenance_n to_o say_v i_o adore_v he_o and_o will_v adore_v he_o for_o ever_o and_o if_o he_o shall_v lauhg_v at_o thou_o weep_v thou_o with_o many_o tear_n to_o see_v his_o madness_n give_v thanks_n unto_o our_o lord_n by_o who_o we_o have_v these_o thing_n which_o none_o without_o the_o divine_a grace_n can_v say_v we_o wi●h_v a_o loud_a and_o clear_a voice_n and_o with_o special_a confidence_n will_v cry_v out_o the_o cros_n be_v our_o glory_n our_o freedom_n our_o crown_n the_o head_n and_o fountain_n of_o our_o happiness_n i_o will_v i_o can_v say_v with_o s._n paul_n the_o world_n be_v crucify_a to_o i_o and_o i_o to_o the_o world_n but_o my_o passion_n hinder_v i_o that_o i_o can_v not_o say_v so_o wh●efore_o i_o admonish_v you_o and_o much_o more_o myself_o that_o we_o be_v crucify_a to_o the_o world_n that_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o he_o earth_n but_o that_o our_o wh_z le_z mind_n be_v insla●●●_n with_o the_o desire_n of_o heavenly_a glory_n thus_o s_n john_n chrysostome_n and_o there_o remain_v nothing_o for_o i_o to_o add_v to_o his_o word_n word_n worthy_a of_o his_o holy_a zeal_n and_o eloquence_n i_o will_v i_o have_v a_o angel_n voice_n to_o sing_v they_o as_o they_o deserve_v i_o will_v repeato_n that_o say_n over_o and_o over_o again_o thou_z cros_n be_v our_o glory_n our_o freedom_n our_o crown_n the_o head_n and_o fountain_n of_o our_o happiness_n make_v it_o not_o only_o with_o the_o finger_n on_o the_o body_n but_o with_o confidence_n on_o the_o soul_n and_o make_v it_o as_o a_o profession_n of_o this_o faith_n as_o a_o incitement_n unto_o all_o virtue_n as_o a_o armour_n against_o all_o temptation_n as_o a_o defence_n against_o all_o danger_n as_o a_o comfort_n in_o all_o affliction_n it_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o our_o awake_n of_o our_o sleep_n of_o our_o prayer_n of_o our_o study_n of_o our_o preach_n of_o our_o catechise_v of_o our_o eat_n of_o our_o drink_n of_o our_o walk_n of_o our_o ride_n of_o our_o work_n and_o of_o our_o leave_v of_o from_o work_n all_o our_o action_n shall_v begin_v and_o end_v with_o this_o bless_a sign_n and_o word_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n amen_n the_o four_o discourse_n of_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o authority_n and_o use_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o intend_v now_o to_o declare_v the_o creed_n unto_o you_o in_o which_o not_o only_o the_o chief_a mystery_n of_o the_o christian_n faith_n but_o all_o whatsoever_o the_o christian_n doctrine_n teach_v in_o some_o sort_n be_v contain_v but_o first_o we_o will_v have_v recourse_n unto_o god_n and_o crave_v his_o assistance_n by_o our_o bless_a lady_n intercession_n haile_o mary_n etc._n etc._n before_o we_o declare_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n in_o particular_a we_o will_v say_v something_o of_o the_o authority_n and_o use_n of_o the_o whole_a creed_n to_o show_v how_o authentical_a and_o pious_a it_o be_v although_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o deliver_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o they_o to_o we_o neither_o they_o nor_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o we_o but_o for_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n which_o both_o of_o they_o have_v and_o which_o in_o all_o thing_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o same_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o have_v deliver_v the_o scripture_n to_o we_o deliver_v also_o the_o creed_n to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n by_o divine_a faith_n the_o one_o by_o writing_n the_o other_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n from_o time_n to_o time_n both_o of_o which_o tradition_n be_v in_o themselves_o by_o humane_a mean_n only_o a_o like_a fallible_a and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n a_o like_a infallible_a s_o paul_n writing_n be_v receive_v by_o we_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o he_o himself_o have_v say_v of_o his_o preach_n although_o not_o write_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 1.2_o thes_n 1.2_o and_o again_o he_o plane_o command_v they_o to_o receive_v the_o like_a tradition_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n as_o well_o as_o those_o that_o be_v write_v say_v breath_n en_fw-fr stand_n and_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n 2.2_o thes_n 2.2_o these_o be_v as_o plane_n word_n as_o s._n paul_n can_v speak_v or_o write_v to_o let_v we_o understande_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o the_o writing_n which_o it_o deliver_v and_o the_o holy_a father_n by_o these_o word_n understande_v the_o same_o authority_n to_o be_v for_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n and_o for_o the_o lawfullnes_n of_o all_o the_o ceremony_n general_o practise_v and_o allow_v of_o by_o the_o church_n although_o not_o mention_v express_o in_o the_o scripture_n as_o be_v for_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o 3._o l._n 3._o c._n 3._o s._n irenaeus_n bid_v we_o in_o all_o question_n of_o controversy_n to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o to_o try_v they_o by_o the_o apostolical_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o in_o particular_a by_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n and_o say_v that_o there_o be_v many_o nation_n of_o barbarous_a people_n simple_a for_o their_o learning_n but_o most_o wise_a in_o the_o constancy_n of_o their_o faith_n who_o never_o have_v the_o scripture_n s._n clement_n the_o disciple_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o adiutor_fw-la of_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o creed_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n before_o that_o they_o separate_v themselves_o into_o several_a country_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n confer_v together_o and_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v the_o creed_n as_o a_o rule_n to_o direct_v they_o and_o other_o in_o the_o faith_n which_o they_o be_v to_o preach_v and_o therefore_o say_v he_o it_o be_v call_v the_o symbol_n which_o be_v a_o greek_a word_n signify_v a_o collection_n or_o a_o conference_n for_o that_o it_o be_v make_v by_o the_o general_a assembly_n and_o conference_n of_o the_o apostle_n s._n ambrose_n have_v these_o word_n 81._o ep._n 81._o the_o apostle_n like_o a_o company_n of_o skilful_a workman_n conser_v together_o make_v the_o symbol_n as_o a_o kea_fw-mi to_o lock_v up_o the_o diabolical_a darkness_n and_o to_o let_v in_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o must_v deliver_v this_o kea_fw-mi to_o ourbrethren_n that_o the_o disciple_n of_o peter_n may_v use_v it_o to_o lock_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n and_o open_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n to_o themselves_o s._n augustine_n speak_v thus_o of_o it_o temp_n serm_n 80._o the_o temp_n the_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v a_o sure_a rule_n of_o faith_n comprehend_v according_a to_o the_o apostolical_a number_n in_o twelve_o sentence_n they_o call_v it_o a_o symbol_n by_o which_o catholic_a union_n may_v be_v conserve_v and_o haeretical_a pranity_n convince_v it_o be_v a_o symbol_n brief_a in_o word_n but_o large_a in_o mystery_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v praefigure_v in_o the_o patriarch_n whatsoever_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n an●_n whatsoever_o be_v foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n either_o of_o god_n the_o father_n of_o god_n the_o son_n or_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o of_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o of_o the_o death_n and_o resurrection_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v contain_v and_o brief_o confess_v in_o it_o let_v therefore_o every_o one_o learn_v that_o apostolical_a faith_n when_o
he_o come_v to_o year_n of_o understanding_n which_o he_o profess_v in_o baptism_n by_o the_o month_n of_o those_o that_o then_o carry_v he_o and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v that_o christian_n shall_v use_v it_o as_o a_o look_a glass_n morning_n and_o night_n to_o examine_v themselves_o in_o their_o faith_n by_o it_o 1._o l_o 1_o dosymb_n 1._o by_o all_o which_o it_o do_v appear_v first_o that_o the_o creed_n be_v of_o divine_a authority_n as_o make_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n from_o they_o to_o posterity_n as_o the_o write_a word_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n to_o be_v believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n second_o out_o of_o s_o ambrose_n and_o s._n augustine_n that_o it_o be_v a_o kea_fw-mi and_o a_o look_a glass_n which_o the_o apostle_n make_v for_o we_o we_o ought_v with_o great_a reverence_n to_o keep_v it_o and_o to_o use_v it_o as_o such_o often_o frequent_v it_o to_o lock_v up_o the_o infernal_a darkness_n from_o we_o and_o to_o open_v the_o divine_a light_n unto_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o examine_v ourselves_o in_o faith_n by_o it_o as_o by_o a_o look_a glass_n that_o so_o we_o may_v allwais_o keep_v constant_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n quest_n say_v the_o creed_n answ_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_a dead_a and_o bury_v he_o descend_v into_o hell_n the_o three_o day_n he_o arise_v again_o from_o death_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v we_o all_o both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n life_n everlasting_a amen_n the_o first_o article_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n in_o this_o article_n the_o apostle_n profess_v their_o belief_n in_o the_o first_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n in_o the_o follow_a article_n they_o profess_v the_o second_o person_n and_o the_o three_o but_o we_o be_v not_o here_o to_o understande_v that_o god_n the_o father_n without_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v the_o world_n for_o every_o external_a work_n which_o god_n do_v be_v do_v by_o all_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n have_v all_o the_o same_o undivided_a power_n all_o equal_o concur_v to_o the_o make_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o the_o father_n be_v name_v first_o and_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v here_o particular_o attribute_v to_o he_o because_o he_o be_v the_o first_o person_n from_o who_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n eternal_o proceed_v god_n be_v right_o term_v a_o father_n to_o signify_v his_o power_n love_n and_o care_n over_o us._n father_n god_n a_o father_n for_o as_o father_n begin_v the_o generation_n that_o come_v of_o they_o and_o govern_v their_o child_n and_o provide_v for_o they_o so_o be_v god_n the_o beginner_n of_o this_o world_n he_o govern_v it_o with_o his_o power_n and_o by_o his_o providence_n conserve_v it_o 32._o deut._n 32._o be_v not_o he_o thy_o father_n that_o have_v possess_v thou_o and_o make_v and_o create_v thou_o by_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v understand_v all_o creature_n heavenly_a and_o earthly_a that_o be_v both_o spiritual_a and_o corporal_a creature_n and_o in_o this_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v express_v by_o his_o external_a work_n so_o as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o distinguish_v he_o as_o the_o supreme_a power_n and_o to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o our_o duty_n to_o he_o and_o dependence_n of_o he_o as_o give_v we_o our_o be_v and_o still_o conserve_n we_o in_o the_o be_v which_o we_o have_v and_o which_o all_o creature_n shall_v present_o and_o in_o a_o instant_n loose_a if_o he_o shall_v withdraw_v his_o divine_a help_n from_o they_o and_o there_o will_v be_v no_o creature_n at_o all_o but_o as_o there_o be_v once_o nothing_o but_o god_n god_n be_v the_o most_o perfect_a of_o all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o a_o spirit_n all_o over_o by_o his_o power_n and_o his_o power_n be_v himself_o he_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o any_o place_n now_o no_o more_o than_o he_o be_v before_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n he_o be_v all_o way_n the_o same_o power_n the_o same_o goodness_n and_o those_o infinite_a he_o ever_o have_v a_o decree_n to_o create_v the_o world_n and_o that_o eternal_a decree_n he_o perform_v in_o time_n make_v the_o angel_n only_a spirit_n man_n both_o spiritual_a in_o their_o soul_n and_o corporal_a in_o their_o body_n and_o other_o creature_n as_o we_o see_v only_o corporal_a he_o make_v heaven_n a_o place_n of_o glory_n for_o the_o good_a and_o hell_n a_o place_n of_o punishment_n for_o the_o wicked_a he_o desire_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o and_o give_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o be_v the_o end_n for_o which_o he_o make_v us._n in_o this_o article_n we_o do_v not_o say_v i_o believe_v in_o god_n maker_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o maker_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o we_o have_v two_o thing_n profess_v atheist_n atheist_n first_o the_o essence_n and_o existence_n of_o god_n against_o profane_a and_o wicked_a atheist_n and_o second_o against_o pagan_n the_o being_n of_o one_o only_a god_n this_o be_v here_o but_o breisly_a profess_v for_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o creed_n but_o only_o as_o a_o abbreviated_a profession_n and_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o ground_n and_o guide_v we_o in_o the_o article_n which_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v they_o prove_v they_o in_o their_o preach_n as_o need_v require_v yet_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n as_o in_o the_o creed_n they_o suppose_v it_o so_o also_o they_o may_v do_v in_o their_o preach_n and_o need_v not_o to_o prove_v it_o to_o jew_n or_o gentile_n who_o be_v then_o only_o in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v never_o likely_a to_o deny_v it_o but_o now_o in_o these_o time_n of_o so_o many_o heresy_n i_o do_v not_o see_v that_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n whatsoever_o be_v more_o necessary_a to_o be_v prove_v for_o heresy_n as_o it_o be_v a_o corruption_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n so_o it_o corrupt_v and_o destroy_v by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o very_a hart_n and_o root_n of_o all_o faith_n and_o as_o it_o annull_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n it_o take_v away_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o certainty_n and_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o every_o man_n error_n to_o say_v what_o he_o list_v and_o for_o shameless_a atheism_n to_o enter_v in_o by_o it_o for_o make_v it_o once_o lawful_a to_o disobey_v the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a authority_n of_o god_n external_o upon_o earth_n as_o all_o archhaeretik_n do_v who_o begin_v their_o new_a doctrine_n with_o obedience_n to_o no_o church_n then_o extant_a in_o all_o the_o world_n and_o than_o it_o follow_v that_o every_o man_n without_o control_v may_v believe_v and_o teach_v what_o he_o will_v himself_o for_o there_o be_v no_o authority_n upon_o earth_n to_o control_v he_o and_o so_o he_o may_v as_o well_o teach_v atheism_n as_o heresy_n second_o those_o that_o be_v of_o god_n be_v ordain_v say_v the_o apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o be_v with_o order_n 13._o rom._n 13._o and_o he_o require_v there_o that_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o high_a power_n not_o only_o of_o necessity_n but_o for_o conscience_n sake_n now_o order_n import_v subjection_n and_o subordination_n of_o inferior_n to_o superior_a power_n if_o then_o you_o take_v away_o this_o subjection_n and_o subordination_n of_o inferior_n to_o superior_n as_o haeretik_n do_v by_o disobey_v the_o church_n you_o take_v away_o all_o order_n in_o religion_n and_o by_o consequence_n you_o take_v away_o god_n and_o bring_v in_o atheism_n and_o a_o worse_a disorder_n than_o be_v in_o hell_n how_o hateful_a then_o be_v heresy_n to_o god_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o all_o religion_n and_o how_o dangerous_a be_v atheism_n patrum_fw-la in_o collar_n patrum_fw-la and_o necessary_a to_o be_v prevent_v in_o haeretical_a time_n cassianus_n relate_v a_o example_n of_o this_o in_o which_o he_o show_v by_o experience_n that_o heresy_n lead_v into_o atheism_n he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a religious_a man_n who_o begin_v first_o of_o indiscretion_n to_o make_v comparison_n betwixt_o the_o saint_n and_o
loose_a their_o sensible_a fear_n of_o god_n when_o they_o offend_v he_o yet_o natural_o they_o have_v still_o the_o same_o fear_n of_o he_o and_o he_o allwais_o the_o same_o power_n over_o they_o and_o if_o any_o man_n come_v to_o that_o hardness_n of_o hart_n as_o to_o have_v no_o feel_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n when_o he_o sin_v it_o be_v by_o long_a continuance_n and_o custom_n of_o sin_n that_o he_o lose_v that_o actual_a feel_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n yet_o natural_o and_o radical_o he_o allwais_o have_v it_o and_o can_v loose_v it_o no_o more_o than_o bird_n and_o beast_n can_v ever_o leave_v to_o have_v a_o natural_a fear_n of_o man_n tertullian_n and_o seneca_n have_v observe_v that_o atheist_n when_o they_o fall_v into_o any_o great_a misery_n dern_a ter._n apoll._n senec._n l._n 1._o dern_a and_o especial_o when_o they_o come_v to_o die_v of_o all_o man_n be_v most_o deject_a to_o think_v of_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o the_o punishment_n that_o abide_v they_o and_o be_v more_o vex_v in_o conscience_n then_o any_o detest_a then_o their_o former_a wickedness_n and_o the_o pleasure_n of_o their_o life_n for_o which_o they_o deny_v god_n and_o zeno_n the_o philosopher_n be_v so_o well_o satisfy_v with_o this_o experience_n that_o he_o use_v to_o say_v that_o to_o he_o it_o a_o be_v a_o better_a proof_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n to_o hear_v the_o atheist_n who_o blind_v with_o sensuality_n have_v deny_v god_n to_o confess_v he_o again_o when_o he_o be_v free_v from_o that_o passionate_a desire_n than_o it_o be_v to_o hear_v it_o prove_v by_o the_o best_a argument_n of_o philosophy_n this_o may_v be_v deduce_v out_o of_o s._n paul_n argument_n to_o the_o philosopher_n of_o athens_n when_o preach_v to_o they_o he_o say_v god_n be_v not_o far_o from_o every_o one_o of_o us._n 17._o act._n 17._o for_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o be_v that_o be_v that_o we_o have_v within_o we_o a_o feel_n of_o god_n that_o give_v we_o the_o perfection_n which_o we_o can_v not_o have_v of_o ourselves_o and_o that_o we_o have_v no_o such_o feel_n of_o stock_n or_o stone_n of_o which_o their_o idol_n be_v make_v as_o not_o have_v power_n by_o nature_n to_o give_v be_v life_n and_o motion_n and_o this_o natural_a feel_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n as_o it_o please_v he_o to_o imprint_v it_o in_o our_o heart_n so_o he_o have_v a_o care_n to_o preserve_v it_o in_o we_o and_o have_v therefore_o show_v sometime_o his_o exemplat_fw-la judgment_n upon_o man_n of_o such_o atheistical_a spirit_n as_o have_v strive_v to_o pull_v down_o sanctity_n of_o life_n and_o to_o destroy_v virtue_n 48._o cantip._n l._n 2._o apum_fw-la a._n 48._o cantipratensis_fw-la relate_v of_o one_o simon_n a_o libertin_n of_o paris_n that_o rail_v against_o christ_n for_o teach_v holiness_n of_o life_n he_o fall_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n give_v a_o great_a roar_n like_o a_o beast_n his_o eye_n roll_a after_o a_o ghastly_a manner_n and_o make_v a_o terrible_a noise_n with_o his_o tongue_n but_o can_v not_o utter_v a_o word_n but_o alis_fw-la alis_fw-la which_o be_v the_o name_n of_o his_o concubine_n and_o it_o be_v report_v of_o machiavelli_n that_o profane_a politician_n that_o when_o he_o die_v be_v strike_v with_o despair_n he_o utter_v certain_a word_n wnworthy_a to_o be_v rehearse_v if_o then_o by_o nature_n we_o have_v a_o feel_n of_o god_n and_o for_o that_o feel_n we_o natural_o fear_v and_o abhor_v to_o offend_v he_o and_o if_o wiseman_n have_v observe_v in_o atheist_n that_o when_o calamity_n befall_v they_o and_o especial_o at_o their_o death_n they_o be_v glad_a to_o retract_v their_o error_n and_o repent_v for_o it_o to_o humble_v themselves_o to_o god_n or_o else_o to_o die_v after_o a_o most_o miserable_a and_o horrible_a manner_n how_o great_a then_o and_o enormous_a be_v their_o wickedness_n and_o how_o desperate_o senseless_a be_v he_o of_o his_o own_o good_a who_o for_o that_o delight_n which_o be_v common_a to_o other_o sinner_n will_v surmount_v they_o all_o in_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o malice_n and_o by_o a_o singular_a profaneness_n put_v himself_o upon_o the_o rack_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n so_o grievous_a that_o for_o fear_n of_o worse_a torment_n he_o shall_v be_v force_v either_o to_o confess_v that_o which_o before_o he_o deny_v or_o else_o which_o be_v worse_o to_o die_v a_o miserable_a death_n and_o perhaps_o in_o that_o desperate_a manner_n as_o to_o be_v make_v a_o example_n to_o the_o world_n of_o the_o divine_a justice_n let_v we_o now_o show_v in_o a_o word_n or_o two_o how_o natural_a reason_n do_v demonstrate_v the_o power_n of_o god_n faith_n be_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o first_o foundation_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n who_o will_v reward_v those_o that_o worship_v he_o he_o that_o will_v come_v unto_o god_n must_v first_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v and_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o those_o that_o seek_v he_o 11._o heb_fw-mi 11._o say_v s._n paul_n and_o therefore_o the_o first_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n will_v propose_v to_o be_v profess_v in_o the_o creed_n be_v i_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o the_o last_o thing_n which_o they_o will_v conclude_v it_o with_o be_v life_n everlasting_a a_o necessary_a beginning_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o that_o happy_a end_n the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v then_o the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n and_o he_o have_v give_v we_o natural_a reason_n as_o a_o guide_n to_o the_o high_a light_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o this_o first_o article_n and_o foundation_n of_o faith_n shall_v be_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o natural_a reason_n so_o far_o as_o that_o discern_v by_o nature_n that_o there_o be_v a_o superior_a of_o nature_n we_o may_v have_v recourse_n unto_o he_o as_o to_o our_o superior_a and_o receive_v from_o his_o authority_n the_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o believe_v with_o subordination_n to_o that_o government_n which_o he_o have_v institute_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o we_o may_v see_v this_o first_o verity_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o god_n leave_v not_o himself_o without_o testimony_n be_v beneficial_a from_o heaven_n give_v reins_n and_o fruitful_a season_n 14._o act._n 14._o fill_v our_o heart_n with_o food_n and_o gladness_n he_o have_v indeed_o leave_v as_o many_o testimony_n of_o himself_o as_o there_o be_v creature_n of_o his_o make_n the_o least_o of_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v he_o as_o the_o cause_n from_o whence_o they_o proceed_v and_o the_o power_n of_o which_o they_o depend_v but_o the_o more_o eminent_a creature_n of_o god_n declare_v his_o perfection_n after_o a_o more_o eminent_a manner_n and_o they_o altogether_o manifest_v his_o power_n so_o that_o we_o be_v force_v to_o confesle_v it_o to_o be_v infinite_a and_o that_o he_o be_v incomprehensible_a in_o goodness_n and_o without_o number_n of_o greatness_n because_o he_o eminent_o must_v contain_v in_o himself_o the_o perfection_n of_o all_o that_o be_v and_o of_o all_o that_o be_v possible_a and_o those_o be_v without_o end_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v infinite_o great_a than_o any_o limit_a reason_n can_v comprehend_v but_o let_v we_o see_v the_o testimony_n which_o god_n have_v leave_v of_o himself_o i_o will_v now_o dilate_v my_o speech_n a_o little_a upon_o the_o creature_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v see_v and_o honour_v he_o in_o they_o true_o if_o we_o will_v consider_v the_o admirable_a composition_n which_o we_o see_v in_o this_o world_n and_o will_v hearken_v to_o the_o harmony_n which_o it_o make_v we_o can_v but_o come_v in_o mind_n of_o the_o maker_n of_o it_o and_o admire_v and_o bless_v he_o 3.10_o reg._n 3.10_o and_o as_o the_o queen_n of_o saba_n when_o she_o see_v the_o great_a work_n which_o solomon_n have_v do_v and_o the_o excellent_a fine_a order_n of_o his_o house_n and_o servant_n admire_v at_o it_o be_v so_o ravish_v with_o astonishment_n that_o she_o have_v no_o long_a spirit_n with_o admire_v he_o so_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n may_v well_o be_v ravish_v with_o admiration_n to_o consider_v the_o power_n and_o wisdom_n of_o that_o workman_n who_o have_v build_v the_o heaven_n as_o a_o house_n but_o much_o more_o admirable_a and_o in_o a_o high_a nature_n of_o workmanship_n than_o salomon_n be_v and_o with_o a_o household_n of_o servant_n in_o better_a order_n than_o solomon_n can_v devise_v for_o he_o we_o shall_v see_v contain_v in_o this_o house_n a_o number_n of_o creature_n astonish_v we_o with_o strange_a and_o unspeakable_a variety_n some_o with_o be_v only_o some_o with_o life_n some_o with_o sense_n and_o some_o with_o reason_n every_o one_o it_o be_v proper_a kind_n and_o in_o its_o
come_n when_o they_o shall_v have_v receive_v he_o and_o rejoice_v in_o his_o birth_n than_o come_v their_o sorrow_n for_o reject_v and_o deny_v he_o to_o the_o extreme_a misery_n of_o jury_n and_o jerusalem_n and_o utter_a dispersion_n of_o that_o people_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o this_o chaldaike_fw-mi translation_n be_v esteem_v of_o by_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o most_o authentical_a translation_n which_o they_o have_v in_o so_o much_o that_o they_o place_v it_o with_o their_o scripture_n in_o another_o column_n over_o against_o the_o text_n that_o they_o may_v have_v it_o ready_a at_o hand_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o the_o pain_n of_o the_o land_n of_o jury_n be_v already_o past_a in_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n about_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n since_o and_o christ_n the_o messiah_n be_v bring_v forth_o before_o it_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o must_v then_o have_v be_v come_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o most_o extreme_a obstinacy_n in_o the_o jew_n and_o those_o that_o receive_v those_o scripture_n that_o see_v these_o thing_n to_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v they_o do_v not_o seek_v after_o christ_n who_o come_v in_o those_o time_n and_o with_o so_o many_o miracle_n and_o mystery_n preach_v his_o gospel_n but_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n foretell_v the_o time_n of_o his_o come_n he_o set_v himself_o to_o pray_v carnest_o to_o god_n in_o fast_v sackcloth_n and_o ash_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o israëlit_v out_o of_o the_o captivity_n of_o their_o enemy_n in_o which_o then_o they_o be_v obtain_v not_o only_o his_o desire_n but_o also_o more_o than_o he_o pray_v for_o and_o that_o be_v that_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n shall_v appear_v unto_o he_o and_o reveal_v both_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o israëlit_n out_o of_o that_o particular_a captivity_n of_o the_o babylonian_n and_o also_o the_o time_n when_o the_o general_a redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v come_v 9_o dan._n 9_o seaventy_n week_n be_v abbridge_v upon_o thy_o people_n and_o upon_o thy_o holy_a city_n that_o prevarication_n may_v be_v consummate_a and_o sin_n take_v a_o end_n and_o iniquity_n be_v abolish_v and_o everlasting_a justice_n be_v bring_v and_o vision_n be_v accomplish_v and_o prophecy_n and_o the_o holy_a one_o of_o holy_n be_v anoint_v know_v therefore_o and_o mark_v from_o the_o go_v forth_o of_o the_o word_n that_o jerusalem_n be_v build_v again_o unto_o christ_n the_o prince_n there_o shall_v be_v seven_o week_n and_o sixty_o two_o week_n and_o the_o street_n shall_v be_v build_v again_o and_o the_o wall_n in_o straitness_n of_o the_o time_n and_o after_o sixty_o two_o week_n christ_n shall_v be_v slay_v and_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v his_o people_n that_o shall_v deny_v he_o these_o week_n of_o year_n which_o the_o angel_n here_o assign_v for_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o messiah_n make_v in_o all_o four_o hundred_o and_o ninety_o year_n about_o which_o very_a time_n our_o bless_a saviour_n come_v preach_v his_o gospel_n and_o suffer_v death_n and_o there_o be_v none_o else_o that_o come_v about_o that_o time_n that_o can_v be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o promise_a messiah_n the_o holy_a of_o holys_n that_o be_v slay_v and_o who_o no_o people_n shall_v deny_v and_o after_o whatsoever_o manner_n these_o week_n of_o year_n be_v understand_v they_o must_v long_o since_o have_v expire_v the_o prophet_n aggaeus_n describe_v these_o circumstance_n of_o the_o messiah_n his_o come_n 2._o agg._n 2._o as_o yet_o there_o be_v one_o little_a while_n and_o i_o will_v move_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o dry_a land_n and_o i_o will_v move_v all_o nation_n and_o the_o desire_a of_o all_o nation_n shall_v come_v and_o i_o will_v fill_v this_o house_n with_o glory_n etc._n etc._n great_a shall_v he_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o last_o house_n more_o than_o of_o the_o first_o by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o christ_n the_o messiah_n be_v to_o come_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o second_o temple_n which_o be_v now_o long_o since_o destroy_v to_o wit_n a_o few_o year_n after_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o therefore_o he_o or_o else_o some_o other_o of_o those_o time_n be_v christ_n the_o desire_a of_o all_o nation_n and_o promise_v by_o these_o scripture_n but_o there_o be_v none_o else_o that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v pretend_v to_o be_v he_o for_o although_o s._n john_n baptist_n be_v take_v by_o the_o jew_n to_o be_v he_o yet_o they_o present_o leave_v that_o conceit_n when_o they_o see_v he_o to_o submit_v unto_o christ_n as_o his_o inferior_a and_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o who_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v therefore_o christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v christ_n ●he_v messiah_n of_o who_o this_o prophet_n be_v inspire_v here_o to_o speak_v furthermore_o the_o other_o token_n by_o which_o the_o prophet_n here_o foreshow_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o messiah_n agree_v punctual_o to_o our_o bless_a saviour_n first_o the_o heaven_n be_v move_v by_o diverse_a strange_a apparition_n which_o author_n mention_v to_o have_v be_v see_v against_o his_o come_n as_o by_o the_o miraculous_a star_n which_o appear_v to_o the_o wiseman_n and_o conduct_v they_o to_o the_o astonishment_n of_o herod_n and_o all_o jerusalem_n the_o sea_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v then_o move_v when_o all_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n repair_v to_o their_o native_a place_n to_o have_v their_o name_n enroll_v as_o though_o of_o purpose_n that_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n may_v go_v from_o nazareth_n to_o bethleem_n the_o place_n where_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o prophet_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v which_o motion_n be_v general_a in_o all_o the_o vast_a dominion_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v most_o remarkable_a and_o so_o great_a and_o strange_a a_o motion_n both_o by_o scaand_n land_n as_o until_o then_o the_o world_n have_v never_o see_v nor_o can_v see_v and_o therefore_o most_o worthy_a to_o be_v note_v but_o it_o be_v a_o more_o fearful_a motion_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o which_o josephus_n relare_v to_o have_v happen_v against_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n jud._n jos_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr bell_n jud._n he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v then_o in_o jury_n such_o a_o terrible_a carthquake_n that_o the_o neighbour_a country_n think_v that_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o it_o have_v be_v utter_o destroy_v and_o not_o one_o man_n of_o they_o leave_v alive_a as_o for_o that_o which_o the_o prophet_n say_v of_o the_o last_o house_n that_o be_v to_o say_v thesecond_v temple_n which_o be_v then_o inbuilding_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v great_a in_o glory_n then_o the_o first_o which_o solomon_n build_v it_o declare_v and_o confirm_v all_o the_o rest_n for_o it_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o second_o temple_n shall_v excel_v the_o first_o in_o external_a glory_n because_o in_o that_o it_o be_v far_o inf●●riour_a unto_o it_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o ancient_n of_o isra●●_n who_o remember_v the_o first_o weep_v to_o see_v the_o second_o in_o its_o beginning_n so_o far_o short_a of_o it_o it_o be_v but_o half_a as_o high_a and_o in_o workmanship_n riches_n and_o external_a beauty_n not_o comparable_a to_o it_o it_o be_v indeed_o more_o glorious_a in_o this_o and_o more_o to_o be_v honour_v that_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n honour_v it_o with_o his_o personal_a and_o corporal_a presence_n come_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o second_o and_o be_v by_o our_o bless_a lady_n present_v in_o it_o and_o have_v preach_v and_o wrought_v miracle_n at_o it_o and_o keep_v the_o observance_n of_o it_o thus_o do_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o eternal_a wisdom_n of_o who_o solomon_n be_v but_o a_o figure_n hon●●_n it_o and_o render_v it_o more_o glorious_a than_o solomon_n can_v do_v the_o former_a deny_v this_o to_o the_o second_o temple_n and_o you_o make_v it_o in_o all_o thing_n inferior_a to_o the_o first_o he_o now_o that_o shall_v think_v to_o satisfy_v all_o these_o scripture_n concern_v the_o time_n circumstance_n and_o sign_n by_o which_o they_o have_v foreshow_v the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n by_o say_v that_o he_o be_v already_a come_v and_o come_v about_o that_o time_n in_o which_o our_o b._n saviour_n come_v but_o do_v not_o yet_o manifest_v himself_o to_o the_o world_n but_o lie_v hide_v and_o unknown_a retire_v up_o in_o the_o caspian_a mountain_n or_o that_o he_o live_v private_o at_o rome_n as_o a_o leper_n or_o that_o he_o wander_v about_o the_o world_n from_o country_n to_o country_n as_o the_o common_a say_n be_v of_o the_o wander_a jew_n and_o perhaps_o from_o hence_o derive_v that_o some_o jew_n have_v affirm_v this_o of_o their_o christ_n his_o wander_v until_o the_o time_n of_o his_o manifestation_n
so_o obscure_v and_o thy_o sacred_a and_o life_n give_v face_n to_o become_v pale_a and_o void_a of_o life_n as_o a_o root_n from_o a_o thirsty_a ground_n that_o there_o be_v no_o beauty_n nor_o comeliness_n in_o it_o it_o be_v by_o we_o that_o thou_o come_v into_o this_o plight_n thou_o do_v bear_v our_o sin_n and_o they_o put_v thou_o to_o pain_n and_o disfigure_v thou_o think_v now_o o_o christian_n of_o that_o which_o you_o believe_v and_o confider_v who_o he_o be_v and_o what_o he_o suffer_v for_o you_o jesus_n christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n suffer_v for_o man_n the_o master_n for_o the_o servant_n the_o creator_n for_o his_o creature_n he_o that_o make_v angel_n and_o man_n heaven_n and_o earth_n he_o of_o who_o and_o by_o who_o and_o in_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n he_o bear_v our_o infirmity_n our_o sorrow_n he_o carry_v 11._o rom._n 11._o and_o become_v as_o a_o leper_n strike_v of_o god_n and_o humble_v 53._o esa_n 53._o he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o iniquity_n and_o with_o the_o wail_n of_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v our_o sin_n draw_v blood_n of_o his_o sacred_a body_n and_o crucify_v and_o kill_v he_o heaven_n stand_v astonish_v the_o sun_n be_v ecclypse_v a_o terrible_a darkness_n be_v spread_v over_o the_o earth_n the_o earth_n be_v shake_v grave_n open_v and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o dead_a roze_v up_o to_o life_n again_o at_o this_o mystery_n and_o shall_v it_o make_v no_o impression_n in_o we_o behold_v o_o christian_n christ_n expire_v on_o the_o cros_n and_o say_v often_o with_o yourselves_o who_o be_v this_o that_o be_v crucify_a and_o dead_a who_o be_v this_o that_o be_v crucify_v and_o dead_a it_o be_v the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n who_o the_o angles_n adore_v the_o latchet_n of_o who_o shoe_n s._n john_n baptist_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o loose_v think_v then_o again_o what_o he_o be_v crucify_v for_o it_o be_v to_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o bless_v we_o with_o everlasting_a glory_n o_o bless_a lord_n o_o god_n our_o saviour_n how_o great_a be_v thy_o love_n to_o we_o and_o thy_o hatred_n to_o sin_n that_o can_v cause_v the_o miracle_n of_o thy_o incarnation_n and_o death_n for_o our_o redemption_n i_o rejoice_v in_o thy_o merit_n by_o which_o i_o be_o redeem_v and_o be_v now_o at_o liberty_n i_o dedicate_v myself_o for_o ever_o to_o thy_o service_n keep_v thou_o my_o soul_n and_o let_v it_o never_o forsake_v thou_o the_o benefit_n which_o we_o have_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v praefigure_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n where_o guilty_a person_n that_o have_v sle_z to_o the_o citty_n of_o sanctuary_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n and_o go_v home_o pardon_v at_o the_o death_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n our_o high_a priest_n be_v jesus_n christ_n heaven_n be_v our_o bless_a home_n sin_n banish_v we_o from_o thence_o but_o thither_o we_o return_v again_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n 10._o heb._n 10._o have_v confidence_n say_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o enter_v of_o the_o holy_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n let_v we_o serve_v he_o as_o we_o ought_v and_o then_o indeed_o we_o may_v have_v confidence_n in_o he_o the_o five_o article_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n the_o three_o day_n he_o arise_v again_o from_o death_n the_o apostle_n have_v in_o the_o former_a article_n profess_v the_o passion_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n declare_v now_o his_o victory_n and_o triumph_v over_o it_o that_o which_o by_o this_o article_n be_v propose_v to_o be_v believe_v be_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n depart_v in_o death_n from_o his_o body_n descend_v true_o into_o hell_n for_o as_o long_o as_o his_o body_n remain_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n his_o soul_n be_v separate_v from_o it_o and_o all_o that_o while_o be_v descend_v into_o hell_n some_o haeretik_n have_v wicked_o deny_v this_o article_n of_o christ_n his_o descension_n into_o hell_n ignorant_o understand_v by_o hell_n his_o sepulchre_n not_o consider_v that_o his_o descend_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n be_v profess_v before_o in_o the_o former_a article_n and_o therefore_o there_o need_v not_o another_o article_n to_o repeat_v it_o over_o again_o and_o to_o say_v that_o he_o descend_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n neither_o be_v it_o a_o proper_a manner_n of_o speech_n in_o that_o sense_n for_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v then_o dead_a and_o descend_v not_o but_o be_v lay_v by_o other_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n this_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o body_n descend_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n but_o of_o his_o soul_n descend_v into_o hell_n ancient_o by_o hell_n some_o place_n in_o general_n be_v understand_v where_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n reside_v after_o death_n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o take_v for_o the_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a but_o also_o for_o the_o residence_n of_o the_o just_a as_o when_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n jacob_n mourn_v for_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n joseph_n say_v 37._o gen._n 37._o i_o will_v descend_v unto_o my_o son_n into_o hell_n and_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2._o phil._n 2._o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n bow_n of_o the_o caelestial_o terrestrial_o and_o insernals_n for_o hell_n in_o latin_a be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v a_o place_n inferior_a unto_o we_o or_o below_o we_o which_o be_v therefore_o in_o the_o earth_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o which_o we_o may_v distinguish_v four_o place_n in_o the_o earth_n the_o receptacle_n of_o soul_n depart_v hell_n four_o kind_n of_o hell_n first_o there_o be_v the_o low_a hell_n of_o everlasting_a damnation_n which_o be_v the_o further_a place_n from_o heaven_n as_o most_o suitable_a to_o those_o who_o life_n and_o action_n be_v further_a of_o and_o most_o opposite_a to_o god_n and_o therefore_o in_o respect_n of_o punishment_n it_o be_v the_o deep_a hell_n second_o the_o next_o above_o that_o in_o pain_n be_v purgatory_n three_o above_o purgatory_n be_v the_o place_n where_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o be_v detain_v who_o die_v only_o in_o original_a sin_n four_o above_o that_o there_o be_v a_o place_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a that_o die_v before_o christ_n not_o have_v the_o guilt_n of_o any_o sin_n or_o satisfaction_n to_o make_v for_o it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a that_o any_o shall_v enter_v into_o heaven_n before_o christ_n who_o purchase_v it_o for_o all_o and_o therefore_o those_o soul_n remain_v in_o a_o inferior_a place_n until_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o he_o descend_v to_o they_o free_v they_o from_o that_o place_n this_o be_v some_o time_n call_v the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n because_o abraham_n be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o comprise_v as_o it_o be_v in_o he_o all_o the_o just_a as_o christ_n come_v of_o his_o seed_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o just_a thither_o therefore_o do_v our_o bless_a saviour_n descend_v to_o bless_v and_o to_o free_v those_o holy_a soul_n and_o perhaps_o he_o will_v also_o show_v himself_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o purgatory_n for_o their_o comfort_n as_o also_o to_o the_o damn_a soul_n for_o their_o terror_n and_o rebuke_n christ_n be_v bury_v on_o the_o friday_n on_o which_o he_o suffer_v for_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cros_n be_v hold_v in_o that_o ignominy_n that_o the_o law_n command_v those_o that_o be_v crucify_a to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o cros_n on_o the_o same_o day_n after_o his_o burial_n he_o remain_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n all_o that_o day_n and_o all_o saturday_n and_o part_n of_o sunday_n until_o about_o break_v of_o day_n all_o which_o time_n his_o soul_n be_v descend_v into_o hell_n then_o he_o release_v the_o just_a out_o of_o that_o place_n in_o which_o they_o be_v detain_v and_o bring_v they_o with_o he_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n where_o unite_n his_o soul_n and_o body_n together_o again_o the_o three_o day_n he_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a not_o as_o those_o who_o have_v be_v reviue_v by_o the_o power_n of_o other_o to_o a_o second_o life_n and_o to_o die_v a_o second_o death_n but_o by_o his_o own_o power_n he_o aroze_v again_o to_o die_v no_o more_o for_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v allwais_o present_a with_o his_o body_n and_o soul_n as_o unite_v with_o they_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o person_n he_o have_v power_n to_o raise_v himself_o and_o by_o his_o own_o power_n he_o take_v life_n again_o and_o aroze_v glorious_a and_o therefore_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o 10._o io._n 10._o i_o yield_v my_o life_n etc._n etc._n i_o yield_v it_o of_o myself_o and_o i_o have_v power_n to_o yield_v it_o and_o i_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o again_o we_o read_v of_o diverse_a who_o have_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n both_o before_o and_o since_o the_o
long_o as_o they_o live_v so_o the_o damn_a be_v settle_v in_o that_o state_n of_o desperation_n rage_n and_o horrible_a torment_n to_o endure_v it_o and_o to_o endure_v it_o still_o and_o can_v never_o change_v or_o alter_v from_o it_o in_o all_o thy_o work_n remember_v thy_o latter_a end_n 7._o eccli_n 7._o and_o thou_o will_v not_o sin_n for_o ever_o this_o be_v the_o last_o thing_n which_o the_o apostle_n will_v mention_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o creed_n and_o which_o ought_v to_o leave_v a_o great_a fear_n and_o vehement_a horror_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o wicked_a to_o who_o he_o shall_v come_v as_o to_o his_o enemy_n that_o can_v expect_v no_o favour_n from_o he_o and_o therefore_o this_o day_n be_v call_v the_o day_n of_o our_o lord_n because_o christ_n shall_v come_v as_o a_o terrible_a lord_n to_o they_o and_o shall_v call_v they_o to_o a_o strict_a account_n for_o the_o neglect_n of_o their_o service_n to_o he_o and_o they_o have_v receive_v good_a thing_n in_o this_o life_n but_o wicked_o employ_v they_o have_v then_o evil_a to_o receive_v but_o the_o just_a who_o have_v serve_v god_n due_o and_o have_v not_o seek_v after_o the_o pleasure_n and_o good_n of_o this_o world_n but_o have_v then_o good_a thing_n to_o receive_v have_v reason_n to_o rejoice_v and_o to_o be_v comfort_v at_o the_o thought_n of_o this_o day_n and_o therefore_o at_o the_o departure_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o ascension_n from_o the_o apostle_n the_o angel_n be_v send_v to_o comfort_v they_o with_o the_o remembrace_n of_o his_o second_o come_v say_v you_o man_n of_o galilee_n why_o do_v you_o stand_v look_v into_o heaven_n 1._o act._n 1._o this_o jesus_n which_o be_v assumpt_v from_o you_o into_o heaven_n shall_v so_o come_v as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n he_o come_v as_o a_o spouse_n full_a of_o joy_n to_o the_o just_a and_o bless_v they_o with_o everlasting_a blessing_n because_o they_o have_v provide_v the_o light_n of_o good_a work_n let_v we_o do_v so_o and_o we_o shall_v be_v admit_v into_o his_o joyful_a nuptial_n and_o receive_v blessing_n of_o he_o thus_o you_o understande_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a to_o wit_v the_o state_n of_o the_o good_a and_o of_o the_o evil_a the_o one_o of_o they_o live_v spiritual_o with_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n the_o other_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n but_o perhaps_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v also_o of_o corporal_a life_n with_o which_o some_o shall_v be_v then_o live_v on_o earth_n when_o christ_n shall_v come_v and_o shall_v be_v judge_v with_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a before_o that_o day_n and_o who_o know_v but_o he_o himself_o may_v live_v to_o see_v the_o terrible_a appearance_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o judge_v he_o and_o that_o present_o die_v he_o shall_v rise_v again_o to_o receive_v the_o sentence_n of_o his_o judgement_n for_o christ_n himself_o have_v say_v that_o of_o that_o day_n or_o hour_n no_o man_n know_v 13._o mar._n 13._o neither_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n how_o much_o then_o ought_v we_o to_o fear_n and_o prevent_v it_o and_o not_o to_o remain_v one_o day_n no_o nor_o one_o hour_n in_o mortal_a sin_n the_o eight_o article_n i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n hitherto_o the_o apostle_n in_o all_o the_o former_a article_n have_v deliver_v those_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o first_o and_o second_o person_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n now_o they_o profess_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n s._n 19_o act._n 19_o paul_n come_v to_o ephesus_n find_v certain_a disciple_n so_o ignorant_a that_o ask_v they_o if_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o answer_v that_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v that_o there_o be_v a_o holy_a ghost_n this_o have_v be_v indeed_o a_o very_a great_a ignorance_n in_o they_o if_o they_o have_v be_v christian_n which_o they_o be_v not_o and_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n be_v to_o be_v but_o obscure_o deliver_v to_o the_o jew_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o another_o place_n treat_v of_o it_o they_o be_v the_o disciple_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n baptize_v by_o his_o baptism_n which_o can_v not_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o baptize_v with_o christian_n baptism_n in_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v give_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o less_o ignorance_n in_o they_o but_o for_o any_o of_o we_o not_o to_o know_v what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v be_v a_o extreme_a ignorance_n and_o therefore_o we_o will_v first_o declare_v who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v and_o why_o he_o be_v so_o call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n and_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o although_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a angel_n be_v holy_a spirit_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o who_o we_o be_v speak_v when_o therefore_o we_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o mean_v the_o divine_a person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o when_o christ_n command_v baptism_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o first_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n be_v call_v the_o father_n because_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o he_o the_o second_o person_n be_v call_v the_o son_n because_o he_o proceed_v as_o son_n from_o the_o father_n the_o three_o person_n be_v call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o holy_a spirit_n because_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n by_o way_n of_o mutual_a inspiration_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v true_a god_n omnipotent_a eternal_a and_o infinite_a in_o all_o perfection_n the_o very_a same_o in_o essence_n and_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o s._n peter_n threaten_v ananias_n for_o his_o deceit_n and_o lie_v which_o he_o have_v tell_v say_v ananias_n why_o have_v satan_n tempt_v thy_o hart_n 5._o act._n 5._o that_o thou_o shall_v lie_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n t●ou_fw-gr have_v lie_v to_o god_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o word_n of_o baptism_n he_o be_v command_v to_o be_v name_v as_o the_o same_o in_o godhead_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o s._n john_n say_v there_o be_v three_o which_o give_v testimony_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n 1.5_o io._n 1.5_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o three_o in_o distinction_n of_o person_n one_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o nature_n and_o essence_n and_o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v both_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n therefore_o he_o be_v sometime_o say_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n and_o sometime_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n the_o nine_o article_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o apostle_n have_v profess_v their_o belief_n in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n borne_z and_o crucify_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n and_o their_o belief_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o have_v give_v we_o in_o brief_a the_o mystery_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n and_o of_o the_o incarnation_n the_o next_o thing_n which_o they_o mind_v be_v to_o make_v a_o article_n of_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n which_o article_n be_v no_o less_o necessary_a than_o any_o of_o the_o former_a nay_o in_o this_o it_o be_v the_o most_o necessary_a of_o all_o that_o by_o believe_v the_o church_n we_o come_v to_o have_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o former_a and_o to_o understande_v right_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_n faith_n and_o therefore_o as_o s._n augustine_n have_v observe_v the_o prophet_n have_v speak_v planely_o of_o the_o church_n than_o they_o have_v do_v of_o christ_n himself_o 30._o aug._n in_o be_v 30._o because_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o rule_n and_o guide_v by_o which_o we_o be_v to_o be_v direct_v in_o all_o thing_n which_o we_o believe_v of_o he_o and_o all_o true_a believer_n be_v keep_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o true_a faith_n and_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v found_v by_o he_o continue_v allwais_o inviolated_a by_o continual_a obedience_n to_o the_o church_n this_o then_o be_v the_o end_n and_o intention_n of_o this_o article_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o declaration_n of_o it_o quest_n what_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n answ_n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o congregation_n of_o all_o faithful_a pastor_n and_o people_n unite_v together_o as_o a_o body_n with_o its_o head_n s._n augustine_n define_v the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o congregation_n of_o all_o
secute_v from_o error_n that_o at_o all_o time_n in_o all_o controversy_n follow_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o adhaere_fw-la to_o it_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v this_o important_a article_n that_o we_o may_v never_o forget_v our_o obedience_n to_o the_o church_n but_o that_o in_o all_o doubt_n and_o difficulty_n we_o may_v have_v recourse_n to_o it_o and_o say_v i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o those_o who_o will_v stand_v against_o it_o may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v infringer_n of_o the_o law_n and_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n from_o hence_o be_v the_o begin_n of_o all_o heresy_n that_o some_o private_a man_n will_v contradict_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o object_v against_o some_o particular_a point_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n they_o make_v themselves_o the_o judge_n and_o determine_v as_o they_o will_v themselves_o they_o contend_v allwais_o about_o some_o particular_a point_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o wrangle_v about_o they_o but_o if_o you_o ask_v they_o upon_o what_o authority_n they_o contradict_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n separate_v from_o they_o they_o be_v then_o out_o of_o their_o wit_n and_o know_v not_o what_o to_o say_v know_v that_o if_o they_o pretend_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o same_o question_n confound_v they_o again_o demand_v upon_o what_o authority_n they_o dare_v interpret_v the_o word_n of_o god_n against_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o against_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v against_o they_o command_v both_o in_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n to_o believe_v the_o church_n if_o we_o will_v give_v they_o satisfaction_n in_o those_o particular_a point_n and_o difficulty_n it_o be_v but_o of_o courtesy_n for_o we_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v many_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o by_o our_o own_o reason_n we_o can_v comprehend_v the_o most_o reasonable_a and_o best_a satisfaction_n be_v because_o the_o catholic_a church_n so_o teach_v otherwise_o as_o i_o have_v show_v we_o shall_v neither_o have_v creed_n nor_o scripture_n nor_o god_n contend_v not_o then_o with_o haeretik_n about_o particular_a point_n but_o ask_v they_o upon_o what_o authority_n they_o dare_v question_v they_o what_o church_n will_v they_o follow_v if_o they_o will_v fall_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o some_o company_n of_o haeretik_n that_o begin_v at_o some_o time_n against_o all_o church_n or_o if_o themselves_o will_v begin_v such_o a_o company_n they_o be_v here_o condemn_v in_o this_o article_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o rule_n the_o guide_n the_o sure_a anchor_n to_o which_o we_o must_v all_o way_n hold_v it_o be_v a_o rock_n which_o dash_v in_o piece_n all_o temptation_n of_o faith_n and_o objection_n of_o haeretik_n and_o keep_v we_o free_a from_o doubt_n and_o fear_n as_o in_o a_o quiet_a and_o safe_a harbour_n let_v we_o now_o speak_v of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n in_o holy_a scripture_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o well_o order_v city_n such_o a_o one_o as_o jerusalem_n be_v when_o the_o service_n of_o god_n slourish_v in_o it_o but_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n do_v far_o excel_v that_o for_o it_o be_v a_o government_n which_o god_n have_v take_v a_o near_a charge_n of_o as_o have_v in_o his_o own_o person_n institute_v it_o first_o and_o engage_v himself_o by_o promise_n allwais_o to_o protect_v and_o defend_v it_o and_o therefore_o he_o must_v at_o all_o time_n provide_v such_o governor_n for_o it_o as_o shall_v careful_o maintain_v his_o divine_a service_n in_o it_o 62._o esa_n 62._o upon_o thy_o wall_n jerusalem_n i_o have_v appoint_v watchman_n all_o the_o night_n for_o ever_o they_o shall_v not_o hold_v their_o peace_n it_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o army_n of_o a_o camp_n set_v in_o array_n 6._o cant._n 6._o glorious_a in_o itself_o and_o terrible_a to_o its_o enemy_n for_o the_o order_n which_o it_o have_v the_o order_n and_o good_a government_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o the_o due_a subordination_n of_o subject_n to_o their_o superior_n as_o in_o our_o body_n several_a office_n be_v give_v to_o several_a part_n and_o all_o of_o they_o constitute_v under_o one_o head_n and_o as_o in_o a_o common_a wealth_n some_o bear_v office_n and_o other_o without_o office_n obey_v they_o and_o all_o be_v final_o reduce_v unto_o some_o head_n and_o supreme_a power_n and_o that_o supreme_a power_n subordinate_a last_o to_o god_n that_o empower_v it_o so_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n some_o have_v authority_n over_o other_o and_o one_o head_n be_v place_v over_o all_o these_o be_v the_o pastor_n who_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o dispose_v into_o that_o order_n 13._o rom._n 13._o those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n be_v ordain_v say_v the_o apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o be_v with_o order_n and_o to_o be_v with_o order_n be_v to_o be_v not_o all_o alike_o but_o with_o subordination_n of_o inferior_n to_o superior_a power_n and_o so_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o people_n subordinate_a to_o their_o pastor_n and_o of_o pastor_n subordinate_a unto_o one_o supreme_a head_n upon_o earth_n and_o the_o head_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n exercise_v their_o power_n most_o full_o in_o a_o general_n council_n it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o head_n and_o of_o general_a counsel_n christ_n choose_v out_o of_o all_o the_o world_n some_o to_o be_v his_o disciple_n church_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n out_o of_o his_o disciple_n he_o take_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n and_o out_o of_o his_o apostle_n he_o choose_v one_o to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o to_o have_v authority_n over_o his_o whole_a church_n these_o understand_v by_o the_o disciple_n all_o those_o that_o be_v under_o the_o apostle_n be_v then_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n s._n peter_n be_v choose_v by_o he_o as_o the_o head_n and_o supreme_a pastor_n over_o all_o both_o pastor_n and_o people_n he_o and_o his_o successor_n we_o call_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o that_o bear_v upon_o earth_n the_o person_n and_o place_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o chief_a head_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o can_v it_o in_o reason_n offend_v any_o that_o we_o call_v s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n in_o that_o office_n the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n for_o if_o s._n paul_n may_v authorise_v what_o he_o do_v in_o punish_v and_o pardon_v of_o the_o corinthian_a with_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n and_o can_v lawful_o say_v that_o he_o do_v it_o in_o the_o name_n virtue_n 2.2_o cor._n 1.5_o cor._n 2.2_o and_o person_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v but_o a_o subject_n of_o the_o head_n pastor_n of_o the_o church_n with_o much_o more_o reason_n the_o chief_a pastor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v call_v the_o vicat_a of_o christ_n he_o perform_v and_o execute_v that_o office_n after_o a_o more_o eminent_a manner_n in_o the_o name_n virtue_n and_o person_n of_o christ_n christ_n first_o promise_v this_o authority_n when_o ask_v his_o disciple_n who_o they_o think_v he_o to_o be_v peter_n answer_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n then_o ●esus_fw-la answer_v say_v to_o he_o 16._o mat._n 16._o bless_a be_v thou_o simon_n 〈…〉_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o thou_o be_v peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o ga●es_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o i_o will_v give_v to_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n and_o what_o soever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v in_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v loose_v also_o in_o the_o heaven_n by_o which_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o some_o great_a dignity_n and_o preeminonce_n be_v intend_v to_o peter_n then_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n first_o it_o be_v a_o most_o singular_a high_a mystery_n that_o which_o christ_n ask_v and_o peter_n then_o profess_v and_o which_o before_o then_o perhaps_o be_v never_o reveal_v to_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o which_o flesh_n and_o blood_n can_v not_o reveal_v that_o be_v by_o humane_a mean_n can_v not_o be_v understand_v moreover_o christ_n then_o bless_v he_o and_o speak_v unto_o he_o after_o a_o most_o particular_a and_o energious_a manner_n of_o speech_n call_v he_o a_o rock_n which_o be_v not_o his_o name_n nor_o have_v airy_a relation_n to_o he_o more_o than_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o
sentence_n which_o they_o give_v so_o priest_n be_v make_v of_o god_n the_o judge_n over_o soul_n they_o bear_v his_o person_n they_o forgive_v sin_n and_o who_o sin_n they_o forgive_v upon_o earth_n those_o be_v forgive_v by_o he_o in_o heaven_n by_o sin_n we_o become_v debtor_n to_o god_n he_o be_v the_o creditor_n who_o only_o of_o himself_o can_v forgive_v but_o he_o substitute_v other_o to_o forgive_v in_o his_o name_n his_o substitute_n can_v valid_o forgive_v and_o the_o substitute_n of_o god_n be_v his_o priest_n to_o say_v that_o man_n can_v not_o have_v power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n be_v that_o which_o the_o jew_n object_v against_o christ_n and_o which_o he_o answer_v and_o disproove_v by_o a_o miracle_n show_v by_o it_o that_o himself_o not_o only_o as_o he_o be_v god_n but_o also_o according_a to_o his_o humanity_n can_v forgive_v sin_n a_o lame_a and_o impotent_a man_n be_v bring_v unto_o he_o he_o say_v 9_o mat._n 9_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o and_o when_o the_o jew_n hear_v those_o word_n present_o they_o say_v that_o he_o blaspheme_v as_o though_o the_o power_n of_o forgive_a sin_n have_v be_v so_o proper_a to_o god_n that_o he_o can_v not_o have_v impart_v it_o to_o man_n but_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o blasphemy_n in_o his_o word_n wherefore_o think_v you_o evil_a in_o you_o heart_n say_v christ_n whether_o be_v easy_a to_o say_v thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o or_o to_o say_v arise_v and_o walk_v but_o that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v power_n on_o earth_n to_o forgive_v sin_n arise_v take_v up_o thy_o bed_n and_o go_v into_o thy_o house_n and_o he_o aroze_v and_o go_v into_o his_o house_n and_o the_o multitude_n see_v it_o glorified_a god_n that_o have_v give_v such_o power_n to_o man_n now_o let_v none_o ever_o say_v that_o man_n can_v have_v power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n or_o injury_n to_o god_n to_o say_v that_o he_o give_v power_n to_o man_n to_o forgive_v sin_n that_o to_o say_v the_o contrary_n be_v a_o blasphemy_n and_o injury_n to_o he_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o can_v not_o or_o do_v not_o give_v that_o power_n to_o man_n for_o as_o the_o honour_n and_o power_n of_o the_o king_n be_v not_o diminish_v but_o rather_o his_o love_n and_o care_n over_o his_o subject_n be_v demonstrate_v in_o make_v judge_n to_o conserve_v justice_n and_o order_n among_o they_o and_o especial_o in_o give_v power_n to_o his_o judge_n to_o pardon_v offence_n do_v against_o he_o so_o be_v it_o a_o special_a demonstration_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n unto_o man_n to_o give_v power_n to_o priest_n to_o forgive_v sin_n which_o be_v commit_v against_o he_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v we_o here_o to_o profess_v to_o wit_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n by_o power_n give_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o that_o consider_v the_o evil_a of_o mortal_a sin_n how_o that_o it_o wound_v and_o quite_o kill_v our_o soul_n leave_v they_o deprive_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o guilty_a of_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n will_v esteem_v great_o of_o this_o power_n and_o will_v think_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n which_o so_o much_o behove_v a_o sinner_n as_o the_o right_a application_n of_o that_o power_n to_o himself_o 27._o esa_n 27._o this_o be_v the_o end_n and_o fruit_n of_o all_o that_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o say_v the_o prophet_n by_o this_o our_o soul_n when_o they_o be_v as_o a_o dead_a and_o filthy_a carrion_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n make_v clean_o and_o beautiful_a and_o all_o the_o happiness_n of_o future_a life_n also_o become_v then_o due_a to_o they_o this_o we_o shall_v learn_v how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v apply_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n where_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o be_v obtain_v the_o eleaventh_n article_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n how_o necessary_a this_o article_n be_v to_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o christian_n doctrine_n it_o appear_v in_o this_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o only_o profess_v it_o but_o also_o prove_v it_o s._n paul_n proove_v the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n if_o say_v he_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a neither_o be_v christ_n rise_v again_o 15._o cor._n 1_o 15._o and_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v again_o then_o vain_a be_v our_o preach_v vain_a also_o be_v your_o faith_n and_o he_o declare_v and_o confirm_v it_o by_o the_o similitude_n of_o corn_n which_o corrupt_v in_o the_o seed_n rise_v up_o fresh_a and_o fair_a corn_n again_o with_o these_o and_o the_o like_a argument_n he_o dispute_v against_o certain_a man_n that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n 2.2_o tim._n 2.2_o as_o hymenaeus_n and_o philetus_n who_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o resurreation_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n christ_n also_o himself_o dispute_v with_o the_o saducaean_n about_o this_o point_n and_o confirm_v in_o fact_n the_o truth_n of_o it_o when_o he_o raze_v lazarus_n to_o life_n who_o although_o he_o have_v be_v four_o day_n dead_a and_o lay_v then_o stink_v in_o the_o monument_n yet_o when_o christ_n call_v he_o hear_v 11._o io._n 11._o and_o obey_v come_v forth_o fresh_a and_o lively_a holy_a job_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o his_o assiction_n comfort_v himself_o with_o these_o word_n 19_o job_n 19_o i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o in_o the_o last_o day_n i_o shall_v rise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v compass_v again_o with_o my_o skin_n and_o in_o my_o flesh_n i_o shall_v see_v god_n thus_o do_v this_o holy_a man_n solace_v himself_o with_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o he_o say_v he_o have_v lay_v up_o in_o his_o bosom_n use_v it_o as_o a_o cordial_a and_o antidore_v against_o his_o great_a misery_n our_o soul_n and_o body_n desire_v by_o nature_n to_o be_v unite_v together_o for_o the_o complete_a and_o entire_a constitute_v of_o man_n it_o stand_v with_o reason_n that_o they_o shall_v once_o come_v together_o again_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o bless_a may_v enjoy_v their_o desire_n and_o be_v satiate_v in_o the_o natural_a appetite_n which_o they_o have_v unto_o their_o body_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n be_v mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o be_v take_v by_o the_o ancient_a philosopher_n as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o same_o because_o such_o be_v the_o connexion_n betwixt_o they_o that_o by_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n be_v inser_v for_o if_o the_o soul_n be_v immortal_a and_o have_v a_o natural_a appetite_n to_o the_o body_n as_o be_v ereat_v to_o constitute_v man_n consist_v of_o both_o soul_n and_o body_n then_o that_o appetite_n must_v once_o be_v satiate_v by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n after_o death_n and_o reunion_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o it_o again_o and_o so_o take_v away_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o you_o take_v away_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o then_o all_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o future_a life_n be_v take_v away_o with_o it_o our_o soul_n be_v mortal_a with_o our_o body_n and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n if_o i_o fight_v with_o beast_n at_o ephesus_n what_o do_v it_o profit_v i_o 1.15_o cor._n 1.15_o if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o again_o let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v and_o therefore_o s._n chrysostome_n call_v the_o saducaean_n who_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n the_o most_o pernicious_a haeretik_n that_o ever_o be_v s._n ambrose_n have_v prove_v it_o by_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o those_o who_o have_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o by_o reason_n which_o he_o call_v evident_a conclude_v all_o in_o this_o plane_n and_o certain_a truth_n that_o the_o corruption_n of_o seed_n and_o production_n which_o we_o see_v of_o new_a thing_n be_v unto_o god_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o old_a that_o which_o we_o believe_v by_o this_o article_n be_v that_o the_o very_a same_o body_n which_o live_v before_o although_o never_o so_o much_o corrupt_v shall_v be_v unite_v to_o their_o soul_n again_o and_o remain_v for_o ever_o with_o they_o for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v before_o it_o be_v not_o a_o resurrection_n but_o a_o production_n of_o a_o new_a thing_n and_o that_o this_o resurrection_n be_v general_a to_o all_o 1.15_o cor._n 1.15_o according_a to_o the_o
shall_v not_o covet_v thy_o neighbour_n wife_n thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v thy_o neighbour_n good_n the_o roman_a catechism_n have_v expound_v the_o creed_n and_o the_o sacrament_n give_v in_o the_o next_o place_n the_o exposition_n of_o the_o commandment_n in_o the_o creed_n we_o have_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v sanctify_v with_o divine_a grace_n and_o in_o the_o commandment_n we_o be_v teach_v how_o to_o be_v have_v ourselves_o towards_o god_n and_o our_o neihhbour_n so_o as_o to_o keep_v that_o grace_n which_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o commandment_n be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o to_o say_v the_o law_n or_o the_o commandment_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n for_o the_o commandment_n say_v s._n augustine_n be_v the_o sum_n and_o abbreviation_n of_o that_o which_o god_n have_v command_v all_o be_v deduce_v from_o they_o as_o from_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o that_o law_n which_o by_o nature_n he_o have_v impose_v upon_o man_n we_o observe_v they_o not_o because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n for_o that_o law_n be_v to_o vanish_v away_o as_o a_o shadow_n when_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n we_o observe_v they_o because_o they_o be_v natural_a precept_n oblige_v all_o by_o a_o obligation_n of_o nature_n which_o we_o see_v by_o reason_n and_o feel_v by_o experience_n in_o ourselves_o neither_o be_v the_o commandment_n deliver_v to_o the_o israelite_n so_o much_o to_o let_v they_o know_v their_o obligation_n to_o they_o as_o to_o make_v they_o remember_v it_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v deliver_v with_o such_o dreadful_a sign_n as_o i_o shall_v present_o declare_v that_o they_o may_v reverence_v they_o the_o more_o and_o fear_v to_o break_v they_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o priest_n to_o instruct_v in_o the_o commandment_n and_o to_o see_v that_o they_o be_v keep_v 6._o gal._n 6._o if_o a_o man_n be_v praeoccupate_v in_o any_o fault_n you_o that_o be_v spiritual_a instruct_v such_o a_o one_o these_o be_v priest_n who_o have_v the_o spiritual_a charge_n of_o soul_n and_o who_o must_v answer_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n commit_v to_o they_o they_o have_v then_o good_a reason_n to_o instruct_v and_o to_o reprehend_v and_o if_o people_n will_v have_v priest_n to_o answer_v for_o they_o they_o must_v be_v content_v to_o be_v reprehend_v by_o they_o and_o must_v hear_v and_o obey_v they_o in_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n otherwise_o they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v as_o disobedient_a to_o god_n himself_o 10._o luc._n 10._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o 10._o heh_o 10._o despise_v i_o say_v our_o saviour_n and_o s._n paul_n say_v obey_v your_o prelate_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o for_o they_o watch_v as_o be_v to_o render_v account_n for_o your_o soul_n the_o imperfection_n of_o priest_n be_v ready_o note_v and_o every_o word_n which_o they_o speak_v be_v put_v into_o the_o weighskale_n to_o be_v examine_v but_o their_o instruction_n and_o admonition_n be_v not_o so_o hearken_v unto_o they_o be_v more_o observe_v in_o the_o break_n then_o in_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n con_fw-la l._n 2._o de_fw-la con_fw-la it_o be_v true_a s._n hierome_n say_v that_o a_o trifle_a word_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o priest_n be_v a_o sacrilege_n and_o s._n bernard_n call_v such_o a_o word_n a_o blasphemy_n in_o they_o 2._o mal._n 2._o but_o god_n say_v that_o they_o be_v his_o angel_n when_o they_o deliver_v the_o law_n the_o lip_n of_o the_o priest_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n and_o the_o law_n they_o shall_v require_v from_o his_o mouth_n because_o he_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n their_o fault_n indeed_o become_v great_a by_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o dignity_n yet_o for_o all_o their_o fault_n the_o law_n must_v be_v receive_v of_o they_o and_o good_a catholics_n will_v reverence_v priest_n as_o angel_n and_o will_v be_v glad_a of_o their_o admonishment_n as_o from_o heaven_n it_o be_v my_o part_n to_o instruct_v in_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n and_o you_o to_o harken_v and_o to_o learn_v to_o keep_v they_o that_o we_o may_v both_o do_v our_o part_n we_o will_v pray_v to_o our_o b._n lady_n for_o her_o intercession_n haile_o mary_n etc._n etc._n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o commandment_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o great_a motive_n to_o we_o for_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n to_o think_v who_o it_o be_v that_o command_v they_o it_o be_v not_o any_o potentate_n of_o the_o earth_n though_o never_o so_o great_a and_o powerful_a neither_o be_v it_o any_o angel_n from_o heaven_n that_o impose_v they_o upon_o us._n god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o commandment_n god_n that_o make_v both_o man_n and_o angel_n heaven_n and_o hell_n for_o the_o reward_n or_o punishment_n of_o those_o that_o keep_v or_o break_v they_o this_o consideration_n he_o will_v inculcate_v in_o the_o very_a first_o word_n in_o which_o the_o commandment_n be_v deliver_v 20._o exod._n 20._o say_v i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n it_o be_v our_o lord_n our_o master_n our_o eternal_a and_o omnipotent_a god_n that_o command_v we_o these_o thing_n let_v we_o fear_v he_o and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n 1._o mal._n 1._o if_o i_o be_v the_o lord_n where_o be_v my_o fear_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n the_o commandment_n be_v write_v by_o angel_n in_o the_o two_o table_n of_o stone_n and_o deliver_v by_o the_o angel_n to_o moses_n but_o they_o be_v not_o command_v by_o angel_n god_n command_v they_o and_o with_o his_o own_o finger_fw-la have_v print_v they_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n strike_v reverence_n unto_o they_o and_o a_o natural_a fear_n to_o break_v they_o and_o the_o more_o to_o augment_v that_o fear_n and_o reverence_n in_o we_o he_o deliver_v they_o after_o a_o most_o majestical_a and_o dreadful_a manner_n to_o the_o israelit_v they_o be_v to_o prepare_v themselves_o for_o three_o day_n before_o to_o wash_v their_o garment_n and_o to_o abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n that_o by_o that_o external_a and_o corporal_a purity_n their_o devotion_n may_v increase_v and_o their_o reverence_n to_o they_o the_o three_o day_n be_v come_v and_o the_o morning_n appear_v behold_v say_v the_o holy_a scripture_n thunder_v begin_v to_o be_v hear_v and_o lightning_n to_o flash_n 19_o exod._n 19_o and_o a_o very_a thick_a cloud_n to_o cover_v the_o mount_n and_o the_o noise_n of_o the_o trumpet_n sound_v exceed_o moses_n bring_v the_o people_n towards_o the_o mountain_n and_o such_o be_v the_o reverence_n which_o god_n then_o require_v of_o they_o that_o they_o be_v to_o keep_v of_o and_o under_o pain_n of_o death_n not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o touch_v the_o mountain_n on_o which_o they_o be_v deliver_v he_o and_z aaron_z only_o be_v call_v up_o and_o all_o the_o people_n when_o they_o see_v the_o voice_n and_o the_o flame_n the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n and_o the_o mount_v smoke_a be_v so_o terrify_v that_o languish_v and_o even_o like_a to_o die_v they_o get_v a_o great_a way_n of_o and_o be_v glad_a to_o cry_v out_o unto_o moses_n speak_v thou_o to_o we_o let_v not_o our_o lord_n speak_v lest_o perhaps_o we_o die_v all_o this_o majesty_n will_v god_n show_v to_o the_o israelit_n that_o they_o may_v acknowledge_v his_o power_n in_o the_o commandment_n and_o fear_v to_o break_v they_o and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o for_o that_o people_n that_o he_o will_v show_v this_o terror_n and_o majesty_n but_o for_o all_o other_o after_o they_o that_o all_o may_v acknowledge_v his_o divine_a power_n and_o that_o they_o keep_v the_o commandment_n may_v move_v other_o by_o their_o example_n to_o keep_v they_o 20._o eu●d_n 20._o this_o be_v your_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n before_o people_n that_o hear_n that_o be_v obey_v all_o these_o precept_n may_v say_v behold_v a_o people_n full_a of_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n a_o great_a nation_n he_o that_o consider_v right_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n command_v he_o and_o see_v himself_o besett_a on_o all_o side_n that_o he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n escape_v his_o power_n will_v think_v it_o indeed_o his_o only_a wisdom_n to_o submit_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o obey_v he_o but_o some_o have_v say_v that_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v unpossible_a to_o be_v keep_v and_o yet_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n this_o be_v a_o say_v unworthy_a of_o that_o name_n and_o we_o will_v show_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n 〈…〉_o christian_n in_o their_o christendom_n have_v receive_v grace_n for_o the_o keep_n of_o the_o commandment_n and_o that_o christian_n that_o say_v the_o commandment_n be_v unpossible_a to_o be_v keep_v
the_o chief_a then_o the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n three_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n in_o remembrance_n of_o god_n praeserue_v they_o after_o their_o come_n out_o of_o egypt_n for_o forty_o year_n in_o tabernacle_n beside_o these_o they_o have_v also_o diverse_a other_o lesser_a feast_n as_o of_o the_o new_a moon_n etc._n etc._n but_o these_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o so_o solemn_a that_o they_o be_v keep_v with_o octave_n and_o all_o the_o male_a people_n according_a to_o maldonate_fw-it be_v to_o be_v at_o they_o but_o now_o as_o shadow_n their_o feast_n be_v pass_v away_o 2._o col_fw-fr 2._o and_o oblige_v not_o let_v no_o man_n say_v s._n paul_n judge_v you_o in_o meat_n or_o in_o drink_n or_o in_o part_n of_o a_o festival_n day_n or_o of_o the_o new_a moon_n or_o of_o sabbath_n which_o be_v a_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v to_o wit_n of_o more_o perfect_a observation_n and_o feast_n that_o be_v to_o come_v in_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o beside_o the_o sabaoth_n which_o we_o celebrate_v every_o week_n we_o observe_v also_o other_o solemnity_n of_o the_o chief_a mystery_n of_o the_o christian_n faith_n as_o also_o of_o our_o b._n lady_n and_o of_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n intend_v allwais_o the_o supreme_a honour_n of_o god_n in_o they_o to_o sanctify_v holy_a day_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a only_o to_o abste●●e_v from_o servile_a work_n but_o we_o much_o sanctify_v they_o by_o some_o special_a work_n of_o religion_n do_v on_o they_o to_o the_o sanctify_a of_o our_o soul_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o sabaoth_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o rest_n from_o sin_n 1.25_o reg._n 1.25_o which_o cause_v sohb_v and_o scruple_n of_o ha●t_n in_o us._n for_o this_o the_o church_n have_v command_v that_o every_o one_o hear_v mass_n upon_o holy_a day_n because_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a act_n of_o religion_n as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o fit_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v present_a to_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n at_o least_o one_o mass_n every_o holy_a day_n the_o other_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v much_o inferior_a to_o the_o mass_n and_o sermon_n which_o be_v inferior_a to_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n oblige_v not_o all_o under_o a_o mortal_a sin_n to_o be_v present_a at_o they_o yet_o of_o devotion_n it_o be_v sit_v that_o all_o shall_v be_v present_a also_o at_o those_o holy_a service_n of_o god_n which_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o any_o private_a devotion_n of_o our_o own_o beside_o we_o show_v more_o love_n by_o those_o work_n of_o supererogation_n a_o good_a servant_n will_v not_o expect_v to_o be_v command_v to_o every_o thing_n but_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n will_v do_v that_o which_o he_o see_v to_o conduce_v unto_o his_o master_n profit_n after_o evensong_n honest_a and_o modest_a recreation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v hinder_v those_o that_o have_v labour_v hard_o all_o the_o week_n have_v need_n of_o some_o time_n of_o recreation_n to_o refresh_v themselves_o and_o honest_a recreation_n may_v either_o lawful_o be_v take_v then_o or_o else_o they_o can_v never_o be_v have_v those_o that_o be_v so_o praecise_a to_o the_o contrary_n as_o some_o hypocrytical_a spirit_n of_o thesetimes_o have_v be_v command_v they_o know_v not_o what_o and_o impose_v burden_n which_o if_o themselves_o be_v to_o carry_v after_o a_o whole_a week_n labour_n they_o will_v not_o touch_v with_o their_o finger_fw-la god_n may_v be_v honour_v in_o such_o recreation_n and_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n know_v how_o to_o honour_v he_o in_o they_o it_o be_v a_o great_a wickedness_n in_o many_o who_o instead_o of_o sanctify_v of_o holiday_n with_o good_a work_n and_o abstain_v from_o sin_n make_v they_o the_o common_a day_n of_o sin_n profane_v they_o with_o new_a and_o more_o grievous_a sin_n commit_v on_o they_o this_o be_v a_o circumstance_n at_o least_o fit_v if_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v express_v in_o confession_n for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o circumstance_n of_o high_a malice_n for_o a_o subject_a to_o strike_v at_o the_o king_n and_o to_o attempt_v to_o kill_v he_o on_o some_o solemn_a day_n in_o which_o he_o be_v rejoice_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o people_n and_o comfort_v they_o with_o his_o gracious_a and_o glorious_a aspect_n so_o it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n and_o heinous_a malice_n in_o a_o christian_n to_o give_v himself_o to_o vice_n upon_o holiday_n and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o commit_v treason_n against_o god_n when_o his_o faithful_a servant_n be_v gather_v together_o to_o praise_n and_o bless_v he_o this_o commandment_n be_v break_v by_o unnecessary_a work_n but_o not_o by_o ring_v of_o bell_n adorn_v of_o altar_n dress_v of_o meat_n and_o the_o l●ke_n christ_n himself_o allow_v his_o disciple_n to_o do_v such_o work_n on_o the_o sabaoth_v day_n and_o when_o the_o jew_n murmur_v at_o they_o he_o iustify_v with_o good_a reason_n that_o which_o they_o do_v say_v 2._o ma●●_n 2._o that_o the_o sabaoth_n be_v make_v for_o man_n and_o not_o man_n for_o the_o sabaoth_n and_o when_o the_o pharisys_n murmur_v at_o his_o cure_n on_o the_o sabaoth_a day_n 14._o luc._n 14._o he_o ask_v they_o which_o of_o you_o shall_v have_v a_o ass_n or_o a_o ox_n fall_v into_o a_o pit_n and_o will_v not_o incontinent_a draw_v he_o out_o on_o the_o sabaoth_v day_n 6._o luc._n 6._o and_o upon_o the_o like_a occasion_n he_o ask_v they_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a on_o the_o sabaoth_v to_o do_v well_o or_o ill_o yet_o god_n will_v have_v this_o commandment_n to_o be_v so_o strict_o observe_v in_o that_o law_n that_o it_o be_v not_o then_o lawful_a to_o kindle_v a_o fire_n so_o much_o as_o to_o dress_v meat_n on_o the_o sabaoth_v day_n nor_o to_o take_v a_o journey_n above_o a_o mile_n or_o two_o at_o most_o according_a to_o maldonate_fw-it a_o man_n be_v apprehend_v for_o gather_v of_o stick_n on_o the_o sabaoth_v day_n be_v bring_v unto_o moses_n and_o aaron_n but_o they_o not_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v with_o he_o god_n himself_o give_v sentence_n of_o death_n against_o he_o 15._o num._n 15._o say_v to_o moses_n die_a let_v t●is_n man_n thy_fw-mi let_v all_o the_o multitude_n stone_v he_o without_o the_o camp_n and_o they_o carry_v he_o out_o and_o stone_v he_o to_o death_n nay_o he_o will_v work_v a_o miracle_n in_o praeserue_v the_o manna_n for_o two_o day_n together_o rather_o then_o they_o shall_v gather_v it_o on_o the_o sabaoth_a day_n although_o it_o be_v their_o necessary_a food_n and_o but_o a_o small_a labour_n how_o careful_a then_o ought_v we_o to_o be_v in_o the_o keep_n of_o this_o commandment_n in_o which_o god_n will_v be_v so_o strict_a it_o be_v a_o great_a neglect_n in_o master_n to_o dispose_v no_o better_o of_o their_o affair_n then_o to_o have_v their_o work_n to_o do_v when_o their_o servant_n shall_v be_v at_o rest_n but_o in_o this_o as_o all_o other_o thing_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o place_n be_v to_o be_v reverence_v the_o four_o commandment_n honour_n thy_o father_n and_o thy_o mother_n that_o thou_o must_v be_v longlive_v upon_o earth_n here_o now_o begin_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o second_o table_n the_o three_o former_a be_v contain_v in_o the_o first_o and_o in_o they_o be_v command_v that_o which_o pertain_v immediate_o to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n these_o belong_v to_o the_o love_n of_o our_o neighbour_n the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v the_o root_n and_o foundation_n of_o keep_v the_o commandment_n for_o those_o that_o true_o love_v god_n will_v willing_o and_o ready_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o by_o keep_v they_o they_o be_v more_o and_o more_o ground_v and_o perfect_v in_o the_o love_n of_o he_o it_o be_v a_o high_a expression_n that_o of_o s._n john_n when_o he_o say_v god_n be_v charity_n and_o he_o that_o abide_v in_o charity_n abide_v in_o god_n 1.4_o io._n 1.4_o and_o god_n in_o he_o by_o love_v of_o god_n we_o be_v unite_v unto_o he_o we_o have_v he_o in_o our_o heart_n we_o will_v that_o which_o he_o will_v and_o be_v as_o it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o he_o that_o as_o the_o saint_n of_o heaven_n see_v all_o thing_n in_o god_n who_o abide_v in_o they_o so_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n to_o be_v unite_v unto_o god_n by_o love_n affliction_n be_v sweet_a and_o comfortable_a in_o the_o love_n and_o service_n of_o he_o and_o to_o know_v whether_o we_o have_v the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o no_o the_o same_o apostle_n give_v for_o a_o sign_n the_o love_n of_o our_o neighbour_n say_v in_o the_o same_o place_n if_o we_o love_v one_o another_o god_n abide_v in_o we_o and_o his_o charity_n
in_o we_o be_v persit_v he_o that_o love_v god_n love_v all_o those_o who_o god_n love_v and_o so_o he_o love_v his_o neighbour_n because_o god_n love_v he_o and_o will_v have_v he_o to_o love_v he_o every_o man_n be_v by_o nature_n our_o neighbour_n and_o because_o our_o father_n and_o mother_n have_v most_o propinquity_n of_o nature_n with_o we_o therefore_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o second_o table_n that_o concern_v our_o neighbour_n begin_v with_o the_o love_n of_o our_o father_n and_o mother_n that_o all_o other_o may_v be_v understand_v by_o they_o who_o be_v our_o near_a neighbour_n in_o the_o first_o place_n our_o superior_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a be_v understand_v by_o parent_n 13._o heb._n 13._o of_o the_o first_o the_o apostle_n say_v obey_v your_o prelate_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o for_o they_o watch_v as_o be_v to_o render_v account_n of_o your_o soul_n of_o the_o second_o s._n peter_n be_v subject_a to_o every_o humane_a creature_n for_o god_n 1.2_o pet._n 1.2_o wh●ther_o it_o be_v to_o the_o king_n as_o excel_v or_o to_o ruler_n as_o send_v by_o he_o etc._n etc._n for_o so_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n here_o we_o be_v to_o speak_v both_o of_o the_o duty_n of_o child_n and_o of_o parent_n for_o as_o child_n owe_v a_o duty_n to_o their_o parent_n so_o parent_n owe_v their_o duty_n to_o god_n as_o his_o child_n child_n be_v to_o love_n honour_n and_o obey_v their_o parent_n and_o to_o relieve_v they_o in_o their_o need_n and_o parent_n be_v to_o instruct_v and_o correct_v their_o child_n and_o to_o provide_v for_o their_o maintenance_n child_n must_v love_v and_o reverence_v their_o parent_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o must_v speak_v well_o of_o they_o and_o love_n to_o hear_v they_o well_o speak_v of_o and_o perform_v submissive_o all_o those_o filial_a respect_n which_o child_n use_v to_o their_o parent_n they_o must_v observe_v they_o and_o learn_v at_o their_o good_a example_n they_o must_v obey_v they_o willing_o and_o have_v their_o consent_n in_o those_o thing_n that_o concern_v their_o course_n of_o life_n know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n in_o thing_n lawful_a and_o of_o moment_n to_o disobey_v they_o but_o if_o they_o shall_v command_v something_o which_o be_v unlawful_a then_o we_o must_v hate_v our_o father_n and_o mother_n that_o we_o may_v be_v worthy_a of_o christ_n and_o answer_v with_o s._n 5._o act._n 5._o peter_n god_n must_v be_v obey_v rather_o than_o man_n dutiful_a child_n shall_v have_v a_o double_a reward_n a_o long_a life_n in_o this_o world_n and_o a_o everlasting_a life_n in_o the_o next_o piety_n be_v profitable_a say_v the_o apostle_n to_o all_o thing_n have_v promise_n of_o the_o life_n that_o now_o be_v and_o of_o that_o to_o come_v 1.4_o tim._n 1.4_o and_o this_o reward_n consist_v not_o only_o in_o the_o longnesse_n but_o in_o the_o happiness_n of_o their_o present_a life_n that_o they_o shall_v live_v prosperous_o and_o in_o felicity_n for_o in_o deuteronomy_n where_o the_o commandment_n be_v repeat_v more_o at_o large_a 5._o deut._n 5._o it_o be_v honour_v thy_o father_n and_o mother_n etc._n etc._n that_o thou_o be_v live_v a_o long_a time_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o may_v be_v well_o with_o thou_o they_o be_v to_o relieve_v their_o parent_n in_o all_o but_o most_o of_o all_o in_o their_o spiritual_a necessity_n to_o see_v that_o they_o want_v no_o necessary_a help_n for_o their_o soul_n as_o for_o the_o duty_n of_o parent_n to_o god_n they_o be_v to_o love_v their_o child_n not_o for_o themselves_o but_o for_o god_n sake_n they_o be_v to_o instruct_v they_o or_o to_o see_v that_o they_o be_v instruct_v in_o their_o prayer_n christian_n doctrine_n and_o good_a life_n in_o which_o there_o be_v a_o great_a negligence_n in_o some_o parent_n the_o love_n of_o parent_n to_o their_o child_n ought_v i_o say_v to_o be_v for_o god_n sake_n and_o not_o as_o some_o who_o be_v so_o immoderate_a and_o unwise_a in_o the_o love_n of_o they_o that_o indeed_o they_o make_v fool_n of_o they_o for_o want_v of_o instruction_n and_o dew_n correct_v of_o their_o fault_n these_o have_v not_o the_o right_a spirit_n of_o parent_n and_o their_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n will_v not_o omit_v to_o punish_v this_o fault_n in_o they_o will_v you_o see_v a_o pitiful_a example_n of_o this_o 1.4_o reg._n 1.4_o heli_n be_v a_o very_a good_a man_n but_o that_o he_o be_v note_v of_o too_o much_o indulgence_n to_o his_o child_n and_o therefore_o both_o he_o and_o they_o be_v examplar_o punish_v of_o god_n with_o sudden_a death_n israel_n be_v worsted_n in_o battle_v by_o the_o philistaean_n send_v for_o the_o ark_n of_o our_o lord_n into_o the_o camp_n among_o they_o and_o receive_v it_o with_o such_o shout_n and_o acclamation_n of_o joy_n that_o the_o earth_n ring_v with_o the_o sound_n of_o their_o cry_n and_o their_o enemy_n be_v terrify_v to_o hear_v it_o great_a then_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o israel_n and_o their_o expectation_n of_o another_o day_n the_o day_n of_o battle_v be_v come_v and_o heli_n not_o be_v able_a to_o be_v present_a himself_o at_o the_o fight_n for_o that_o he_o be_v almost_o a_o hundred_o year_n old_a cause_v a_o stool_n to_o be_v set_v over_o against_o the_o way_n and_o sit_v he_o down_o on_o it_o to_o expect_v the_o news_n of_o their_o good_a success_n a_o messenger_n come_v fast_o enough_o with_o ill_a news_n and_o let_v he_o know_v that_o israel_n be_v put_v to_o flight_n a_o great_a ruin_n be_v make_v of_o the_o people_n his_o two_o son_n be_v slay_v and_o that_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n be_v take_v by_o the_o enemy_n with_o all_o which_o the_o old_a man_n hart_n be_v so_o surcharge_v that_o his_o strength_n begin_v to_o fail_v his_o spirit_n to_o faint_v and_o by_o little_a and_o little_a quite_o forsake_v he_o he_o fall_v backward_o over_o and_o break_v his_o neck_n a_o pitiful_a spectacle_n to_o behold_v the_o most_o venerable_a personage_n of_o all_o israel_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o prince_n of_o that_o people_n to_o lie_v in_o that_o posture_n dead_a with_o sorrow_n and_o this_o impute_a byauthor_n to_o no_o other_o sin_n in_o he_o but_o to_o too_o much_o indulgence_n towards_o his_o child_n this_o be_v a_o love_n which_o beside_o the_o hurt_n which_o child_n receive_v by_o it_o hinder_v much_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o parent_n divert_v their_o mind_n from_o he_o and_o as_o it_o be_v turn_v he_o out_o of_o possession_n who_o ought_v to_o possess_v the_o centre_n of_o our_o heart_n it_o be_v as_o hame_z for_o christian_n to_o have_v no_o better_a love_n than_o that_o of_o nature_n which_o be_v common_a to_o dumb_a beast_n the_o love_n which_o parent_n ought_v to_o have_v of_o their_o child_n ought_v to_o be_v gracious_a and_o orderly_a for_o the_o love_n and_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o of_o such_o love_n they_o may_v have_v as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v but_o to_o prefer_v the_o love_n of_o kindred_n before_o god_n be_v disorderly_a and_o unworthy_a of_o a_o christian_n the_o man_n of_o the_o gospel_n 9_o luc._n 9_o who_o christ_n call_v to_o follow_v he_o excuse_v himself_o for_o that_o he_o have_v his_o father_n to_o bury_v but_o this_o be_v not_o a_o good_a excuse_n natural_a love_n be_v to_o yield_v and_o to_o obey_v god_n christ_n know_v what_o he_o have_v to_o do_v and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o call_v he_o he_o have_v do_v a_o good_a work_n in_o bury_v of_o his_o father_n but_o christ_n call_v he_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v forsake_v all_o and_o to_o have_v follow_v he_o and_o therefore_o he_o say_v let_v the_o dead_a bury_v their_o dead_a but_o go_v thou_o setforth_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n those_o that_o prefer_v the_o love_n of_o any_o thing_n before_o god_n be_v spiritual_o dead_a as_o s._n 1.5_o tim._n 1.5_o paul_n say_v the_o that_o be_v in_o deliciousness_n live_v be_v dead_a but_o thou_o if_o thou_o regard_v the_o life_n of_o thy_o soul_n follow_v i_o and_o love_v i_o above_o thy_o kindred_n and_o all_o thing_n yet_o parent_n must_v take_v heed_n on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o they_o be_v not_o so_o severe_a in_o correct_v of_o their_o child_n fault_n as_o to_o dull_a and_o dishearten_v they_o father_n say_v s._n 3._o col_fw-fr 3._o paul_n provoke_v not_o your_o child_n to_o indignation_n that_o they_o become_v not_o discourage_v let_v parent_n observe_v this_o rule_n that_o they_o never_o seem_v to_o correct_v their_o childre_n in_o anger_n but_o allwais_o for_o the_o desire_n of_o their_o good_a and_o let_v their_o child_n allwais_o see_v this_o desire_n in_o they_o for_o such_o reprehension_n and_o correction_n as_o they_o perceive_v to_o proceed_v only_o out_o of_o
that_o the_o more_o they_o drink_v the_o more_o their_o disease_n increase_v and_o their_o desire_n of_o drink_n these_o aught_o to_o consider_v that_o riches_n be_v the_o creature_n of_o god_n ordain_v for_o use_n and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o use_v they_o be_v abuse_v and_o the_o order_n be_v pervert_v which_o god_n ordain_v in_o the_o creation_n of_o they_o some_o sin_n by_o excess_n in_o the_o contrary_a that_o they_o will_v not_o think_v nor_o provide_v how_o to_o live_v but_o spend_v as_o long_o as_o they_o have_v any_o thing_n and_o then_o they_o pass_v on_o a_o slothful_a and_o careless_a life_n choose_v rather_o as_o the_o common_a say_n be_v hunger_n with_o ease_n than_o plenty_n with_o pain_n take_v these_o must_v consider_v that_o god_n have_v provide_v sufficient_o for_o they_o and_o if_o they_o will_v needs_o contemn_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o spend_v all_o than_o they_o must_v use_v their_o limb_n to_o live_v by_o and_o that_o every_o man_n must_v live_v of_o his_o own_o care_n and_o labour_n in_o his_o call_n the_o rich_a have_v a_o more_o careful_a and_o less_o painful_a life_n the_o poor_a as_o they_o have_v less_o care_n so_o they_o have_v more_o pain_n to_o take_v and_o if_o they_o be_v able_a they_o must_v work_v and_o not_o think_v any_o more_o idle_o and_o loose_o to_o depend_v of_o other_o than_o other_o think_v to_o depend_v of_o they_o these_o sin_n by_o too_o much_o neglect_n of_o riches_n as_o they_o be_v good_a the_o covetous_a sin_n by_o too_o much_o love_n of_o that_o which_o be_v base_a in_o riches_n the_o remedy_n of_o covetousness_n be_v to_o stir_v up_o in_o ourselves_o a_o ardent_a love_n of_o god_n that_o we_o love_v he_o in_o our_o riches_n and_o they_o not_o for_o themselves_o but_o for_o his_o sake_n and_o to_o do_v sometime_o some_o deed_n of_o charity_n for_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v keep_v our_o heart_n always_o free_a from_o the_o love_n of_o riches_n and_o open_a to_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o of_o our_o neighbour_n o_o that_o rich_a man_n will_v remember_v those_o word_n which_o king_n david_n sing_v 61._o ●s_n 61._o if_o riches_n abound_v set_v not_o your_o hart_n upon_o they_o they_o may_v desire_v riches_n have_v riches_n and_o keep_v they_o if_o they_o will_v but_o keep_v their_o heart_n of_o they_o and_o use_v they_o as_o god_n have_v ordain_v they_o to_o be_v use_v david_n perform_v himself_o that_o which_o in_o this_o he_o commend_v to_o other_o who_o although_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o some_o other_o sin_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o note_v at_o any_o time_n to_o have_v set_v his_o hart_n on_o riches_n when_o they_o abound_v with_o he_o as_o a_o king_n in_o plenty_n of_o all_o thing_n he_o be_v a_o very_a charitable_a man_n give_v much_o to_o the_o build_n of_o a_o temple_n to_o god_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o he_o set_v his_o hart_n on_o almesdeed_n and_o do_v work_n of_o charity_n and_o not_o upon_o riches_n and_o if_o all_o rich_a man_n will_v do_v so_o they_o may_v be_v happy_a and_o bless_a in_o their_o riches_n you_o have_v now_o the_o ten_o commandment_n declare_v the_o commandment_n not_o of_o any_o king_n or_o superior_a upon_o earth_n but_o of_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o who_o give_v these_o commandment_n after_o such_o a_o terrible_a manner_n to_o the_o israelit_n that_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v they_o be_v almost_o kill_v with_o fear_n at_o the_o receive_n of_o they_o because_o they_o be_v a_o hard_a heart_a people_n and_o as_o stubborn_a and_o perversed_a child_n be_v to_o be_v govern_v with_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o rod_n but_o we_o that_o live_v in_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o law_n of_o clemency_n and_o grace_n and_o in_o which_o we_o have_v such_o a_o example_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n and_o passion_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n we_o ought_v to_o be_v draw_v by_o love_n to_o obey_v he_o who_o entreat_v and_o exhort_v to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n demand_v if_o you_o love_v i_o keep_v my_o commandment_n 14._o io._n 14._o and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o that_o have_v my_o commandment_n and_o keep_v they_o he_o it_o be_v that_o love_v i_o we_o profess_v ourselves_o to_o be_v christian_n that_o be_v as_o the_o disciple_n servant_n soldier_n and_o spouse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o love_v he_o and_o we_o follow_v obey_v sight_n for_o and_o adulterate_a with_o the_o devil_n his_o profess_a enemy_n o_o christian_n be_v this_o thy_o love_n be_v this_o to_o be_v a_o christian_n the_o belove_a disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o that_o say_v he_o abide_v in_o christ_n ought_v as_o he_o walk_v himself_o also_o to_o walk_v 1.2_o io._n 1.2_o you_o will_v think_v it_o a_o horrible_a thing_n to_o see_v a_o christian_n to_o deny_v his_o christendom_n and_o to_o become_v a_o turk_n or_o pagan_a and_o yet_o in_o deed_n we_o deny_v it_o when_o we_o break_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n which_o then_o we_o promise_v faithful_o to_o keep_v 1._o tit._n 1._o they_o confess_v that_o they_o know_v god_n but_o in_o their_o work_n they_o deny_v say_v s._n paul_n this_o be_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n in_o name_n only_o and_o not_o indeed_o as_o the_o traitor_n or_o rebel_n to_o the_o king_n have_v the_o name_n of_o his_o subject_n but_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o he_o and_o thus_o s._n john_n evangelist_n be_v inspire_v to_o declare_v 1.1_o io._n 1.1_o he_o that_o say_v he_o know_v he_o and_o keep_v not_o his_o commandment_n be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o he_o if_o therefore_o you_o will_v be_v constant_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o bear_v true_o the_o name_n of_o a_o christian_n be_v good_a christian_n keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n let_v not_o the_o pleasure_n of_o any_o thing_n draw_v you_o from_o he_o give_v he_o the_o first_o place_n in_o your_o heart_n care_v not_o for_o the_o favour_n of_o any_o so_o as_o to_o loose_v the_o divine_a favour_n contemn_v riches_n forsake_v all_o unlawful_a desire_n bear_v affliction_n loss_n iniury_n imprisonment_n or_o any_o pain_n what_o soever_o rather_o then_o to_o committee_n any_o mortal_a sin_n pour_v forth_o this_o life_n which_o here_o you_o enjoy_v to_o please_v god_n the_o supreme_a goodness_n better_o than_o life_n how_o many_o martyr_n have_v give_v their_o life_n not_o only_o in_o defence_n of_o faith_n but_o of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o fly_v sin_n 13._o don_a 13._o it_o be_v better_a for_o i_o s●ith_o chaste_a susanna_n without_o the_o act_n to_o fall_v into_o your_o hand_n then_o to_o sin_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o our_o lord_n 1.2_o math._n 1.2_o although_o all_o nation_n obey_v king_n antiochus_n i_o and_o my_o son_n and_o my_o brethren_n will_v obey_v the_o law_n of_o our_o father_n say_v the_o holy_a priest_n matathias_n when_o the_o king_n officer_n urge_v he_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n death_n suffer_v for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n make_v a_o martyr_n and_o so_o s._n john_n baptist_n be_v a_o martyr_n because_o he_o suffer_v for_o the_o good_a work_n which_o he_o do_v and_o so_o s._n peter_n be_v a_o martyr_n in_o mind_n when_o for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v with_o thou_o i_o be_o ready_a to_o go_v both_o into_o prison_n and_o unto_o death_n 22._o luc._n 22._o and_o shall_v we_o for_o a_o moment_n of_o delight_n that_o end_v be_v it_o be_v begin_v break_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n lose_v his_o favour_n and_o be_v banish_v from_o he_o for_o ever_o let_v we_o resist_v temptation_n courageous_o and_o with_o zeal_n of_o god_n honour_n say_v from_o our_o heart_n all_o though_o all_o shall_v obey_v the_o world_n the_o flesh_n or_o the_o devil_n i_o will_v obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n i_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o his_o service_n lord_n my_o god_n for_o ever_o will_v i_o confess_v to_o thou_o 29._o psal_n 29._o the_o seven_o discourse_n of_o the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la quest_n say_v the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la answ_n our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n thy_o kingdom_n come_v thy_o will_v be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n and_o forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n as_o we_o forgive_v they_o their_o trespass_n against_o us._n and_o lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n but_o deliver_v we_o from_o evil_a amen_n this_o be_v that_o bless_a and_o most_o perfect_a prayer_n which_o christ_n himself_o make_v and_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n to_o teach_v they_o how_o to_o pray_v it_o be_v necessary_a then_o that_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n understand_v it_o and_o learn_v to_o
the_o obtain_n of_o benefit_n of_o they_o but_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n the_o angel_n and_o saint_n be_v the_o friend_n and_o favourite_n of_o god_n therefore_o their_o intercession_n may_v with_o prudence_n be_v desire_v for_o the_o obtain_n of_o benefit_n of_o he_o if_o they_o object_v that_o to_o pray_v to_o the_o saint_n be_v injurious_a to_o god_n for_o that_o he_o be_v the_o giver_n of_o all_o benefy_v of_o himself_o infinite_o liberal_a and_o that_o it_o deregare_v from_o his_o power_n and_o goodness_n to_o ask_v of_o any_o but_o of_o he_o and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o make_v the_o saint_n god_n to_o pray_v to_o they_o to_o intercede_v for_o we_o and_o that_o the_o liberality_n of_o god_n be_v such_o that_o he_o need_v no_o intercessor_n all_o this_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n it_o be_v not_o injurious_a to_o god_n to_o honour_v his_o servant_n for_o his_o sake_n and_o to_o desire_v his_o favourite_n to_o stand_v our_o friend_n with_o he_o but_o it_o be_v rather_o injurious_a to_o god_n to_o think_v that_o he_o will_v not_o allow_v of_o his_o favourite_n intercession_n we_o pray_v not_o unto_o saint_n as_o to_o the_o supreme_a power_n and_o author_n of_o gift_n and_o therefore_o we_o make_v they_o no●_n god_n but_o we_o pray_v to_o they_o to_o obtain_v gift_n of_o god_n for_o we_o and_o by_o this_o we_o virtual_o acknowledge_v and_o confess_v the_o supreme_a power_n and_o liberality_n to_o be_v in_o god_n and_o that_o all_o power_n be_v subordinate_a to_o he_o and_o all_o gift_n proceed_v from_o he_o and_o although_o the_o liberality_n of_o god_n be_v such_o that_o he_o need_v no_o intercessor_n no_o more_o than_o he_o need_v any_o honour_n or_o praise_v from_o we_o yet_o our_o unworthiness_n be_v such_o that_o our_o prayer_n stand_v need_n of_o intercessor_n and_o the_o divine_a liberality_n be_v such_o as_o to_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o best_a friend_n and_o not_o to_o hinder_v they_o for_o pray_v to_o he_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o objection_n but_o it_o have_v the_o same_o force_n against_o the_o advocatship_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v live_v which_o not_o withstand_v our_o enemy_n allow_v of_o as_o nothing_o injurious_a to_o god_n or_o derogate_a from_o his_o liberality_n they_o object_n the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v one_o god_n 1.2_o tim._n 1.2_o one_o also_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n man_n christ_n jesus_n and_o s._n john_n say_v if_o any_o man_n shall_v sin_v we_o have_v a_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n the_o just_a 1.2_o io._n 1.2_o and_o he_o be_v the_o propitiation_n of_o our_o sin_n christ_n therefore_o be_v our_o mediator_n and_o our_o advocate_n we_o be_v not_o say_v they_o to_o use_v the_o mediation_n and_o advocatship_n of_o any_o other_o first_o this_o argument_n be_v turn_v back_o upon_o themselves_o if_o christ_n be_v our_o mediator_n and_o advocate_n it_o be_v not_o then_o injurious_a to_o god_n nor_o derogate_a from_o his_o liberality_n to_o make_v use_n of_o a_o mediator_n and_o advocate_n as_o they_o say_v before_o that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n therefore_o allege_v make_v nothing_o against_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n nor_o be_v here_o apply_v to_o good_a purpose_n nor_o in_o their_o true_a sense_n for_o the_o apostle_n speak_v there_o of_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n by_o way_n of_o redemption_n and_o so_o christ_n be_v our_o only_a mediator_n and_o advocate_n because_o he_o only_o in_o the_o propitiation_n of_o his_o passion_n redeem_v we_o and_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n redeem_v we_o not_o by_o he_o the_o angel_n be_v good_a angel_n and_o by_o he_o the_o saint_n be_v saint_n and_o by_o his_o powerful_a redemption_n he_o obtain_v that_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n may_v pray_v and_o be_v hear_v pray_v for_o us._n this_o be_v the_o honour_n which_o catholics_n give_v to_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n and_o which_o protestant_n deny_v to_o he_o again_o not_o only_o by_o way_n of_o redemption_n but_o also_o by_o way_n of_o intercession_n christ_n be_v our_o prime_a mediator_n and_o intercessor_n by_o who_o angel_n and_o saint_n intercede_v for_o us._n he_o intercee_v in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o virtue_n they_o intercede_v in_o his_o name_n and_o virtue_n he_o the_o chief_a they_o inferior_a intercessor_n under_o he_o and_o this_o be_v well_o express_v by_o s._n bernard_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n ser_n qui_fw-la incipit_fw-la signum_fw-la magnum_fw-la apparuit_fw-la post_fw-la ser_fw-mi 5._o the_o assump_n opus_fw-la est_fw-la mediatore_fw-la ad_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la christum_fw-la nec_fw-la alter_fw-la nobis_fw-la utilior_fw-la quam_fw-la maria._n we_o stand_v need_n of_o a_o mediator_n to_o christ_n our_o mediator_n and_o none_o more_o profitable_a than_o mary_n to_o us._n and_o the_o same_o be_v also_o orderly_o express_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o end_n of_o our_o prayer_n ask_v through_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n out_o lord._n s._n io._n tract_n 1._o in_o io._n augustine_n have_v these_o word_n in_o declaration_n of_o the_o place_n of_o s._n john_n above_o mention_v answer_v this_o very_a objection_n of_o they_o but_o some_o will_v say_v do_v not_o the_o saint_n than_o pray_v for_o we_o do_v not_o bishop_n prelate_n and_n pastor_n pray_v for_o the_o people_n yes_o mark_v the_o scripture_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o apostle_n pray_v for_o the_o people_n and_o again_o desire_v the_o people_n to_o pray_v for_o they_o and_o s●e_v the_o head_n pray_v for_o all_o and_o the_o member_n for_o one_o another_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n christ_n be_v our_o only_a advocate_n by_o way_n of_o intercession_n our_o b._n lady_n the_o angel_n and_o saint_n be_v inferior_a advocate_n under_o he_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v live_v be_v inferior_a advocate_n under_o they_o pray_v for_o one_o another_o and_o desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o one_o another_o and_o so_o the_o church_n be_v a_o body_n well_o unite_v the_o head_n help_v the_o inferior_a member_n and_o they_o all_o concur_v to_o help_v one_o another_o by_o their_o prayer_n hence_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n be_v further_o confirm_v it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o we_o may_v lawful_o beg_v the_o prayer_n of_o one_o another_o therefore_o with_o more_o reason_n we_o may_v beg_v the_o intercession_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o first_o s._n paul_n often_o desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o the_o roman_n that_o you_o help_v i_o in_o your_o prayer_n 15._o rom._n 15._o and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o pray_v for_o they_o and_o he_o desire_v the_o thessalonian_o brethren_n pray_v for_o us._n 2.3_o thes_n 1.5_o &_o 2.3_o and_o again_o in_o the_o second_o brethren_n pray_v for_o us._n and_o to_o the_o hebrew_n pray_v for_o us._n and_o s._n james_n pray_v for_o one_o another_o that_o you_o may_v be_v save_v 5._o ja._n 5._o the_o second_o follow_v plane_o for_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o they_o have_v object_v or_o can_v object_v against_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n but_o it_o have_v the_o same_o force_n against_o desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n for_o if_o it_o be_v injurious_a to_o god_n or_o to_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n to_o desite_fw-la the_o mediation_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n much_o more_o must_v it_o be_v to_o desire_v the_o intercession_n of_o sinner_n upon_o earth_n but_o they_o say_v that_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n hear_v we_o not_o nor_o know_v when_o we_o desire_v their_o prayer_n but_o this_o be_v not_o true_o say_v of_o they_o christ_n say_v that_o the_o angel_n rejoice_v at_o the_o conve_n 15._o luc_n 15._o sion_fw-la of_o a_o sinner_n but_o how_o can_v they_o rejoice_v at_o it_o if_o they_o know_v it_o not_o saint_n whilst_o they_o live_v on_o earth_n understand_v the_o secret_n of_o man_n heart_n and_o have_v know_v thing_n that_o have_v pass_v at_o far_a distance_n from_o they_o and_o have_v foresee_v many_o thing_n even_o before_o they_o come_v to_o pass_v and_o shall_v they_o be_v less_o know_v when_o they_o be_v in_o glory_n samuel_n tell_v saul_n what_o be_v in_o his_o hart_n ●_o reg._n 1._o ●_o and_o promise_v to_o tell_v he_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o his_o hart_n and_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n for_o god_n have_v reveal_v they_o unto_o he_o elizeus_fw-la see_v in_o absence_n that_o which_o pass_v betwixt_o his_o servant_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o syria_n and_o at_o his_o return_n he_o rebuke_v he_o for_o the_o gift_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v and_o think_v to_o have_v conceal_v from_o he_o if_o live_v in_o this_o world_n they_o know_v these_o thing_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n when_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v know_v they_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o
our_o prayer_n be_v hide_v from_o they_o now_o in_o heaven_n and_o that_o god_n will_v let_v we_o want_v their_o intercession_n for_o want_v of_o reveal_v our_o prayer_n to_o they_o no_o we_o shall_v loose_v nothing_o by_o any_o ignotance_n of_o they_o they_o see_v god_n in_o glory_n and_o in_o that_o glorious_a sight_n they_o see_v all_o that_o be_v good_a for_o they_o to_o see_v therefore_o if_o they_o may_v pray_v and_o be_v desire_v by_o other_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o whilst_o they_o live_v in_o this_o world_n there_o be_v nothing_o to_o hinder_v they_o for_o be_v pray_v unto_o in_o the_o next_o hence_o it_o appear_v how_o absurd_a that_o question_n of_o caluin_n be_v ●4_n ●olu_fw-la l._n 4._o insti_fw-la nu_fw-la ●4_n when_o he_o ask_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n can_v hear_v so_o far_o as_o betwixt_o heaven_n and_o earth_n i_o give_v you_o not_o his_o word_n because_o they_o be_v blasphemous_a and_o to_o irreverent_a to_o be_v repeat_v but_o if_o caluin_n will_v know_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o light_n of_o glory_n which_o the_o saint_n have_v and_o if_o he_o say_v that_o they_o have_v no_o such_o glory_n he_o shall_v never_o have_v it_o himself_o nor_o can_v in_o reason_n expect_v to_o have_v it_o if_o they_o object_v the_o word_n of_o ecclesiaste_n to_o show_v that_o saint_n may_v be_v pray_v unto_o in_o this_o life_n and_o not_o in_o the_o next_o 9_o b●●l_o 9_o where_o it_o be_v say_v better_o be_v a_o dog_n live_v then_o a_o lion_n dead_a it_o be_v true_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o life_n which_o then_o the_o lion_n have_v not_o and_o so_o the_o saint_n according_a to_o their_o body_n be_v better_a alive_a then_o dead_a because_o their_o body_n live_v have_v the_o operation_n of_o life_n which_o dead_a they_o have_v not_o but_o according_a to_o their_o soul_n which_o be_v spirit_n they_o be_v not_o only_o as_o perfect_v but_o much_o perfect_a and_o without_o comparison_n more_o active_a lightsome_a and_o understanding_n be_v than_o not_o only_o lighten_v of_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o body_n but_o also_o enlighten_v with_o the_o light_n of_o glory_n saint_n hierome_n answer_v this_o very_a objection_n to_o vigilantius_n the_o haeretike_n about_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n since_o in_o these_o word_n ●●g_v lib._n count_v ●●g_v if_o apostle_n and_o marryr_n live_v in_o their_o body_n can_v pray_v for_o other_o when_o they_o may_v be_v solicitous_a for_o themselves_o how_o much_o more_o after_o their_o crown_n victory_n and_o triumph_n moses_n but_o one_o man_n get_v pardon_n of_o god_n for_o six_o hundred_o thousand_o arm_a man_n stevan_fw-mi the_o first_o martyr_n after_o the_o example_n of_o our_o lord_n pray_v for_o his_o persecutor_n and_o now_o when_o they_o be_v with_o christ_n shall_v they_o have_v less_o power_n paul_n say_v of_o himself_o that_o two_o hundred_o and_o seaventy_n soul_n be_v grant_v he_o in_o the_o ship_n at_o his_o prayer_n and_o now_o that_o he_o be_v resolve_v and_o with_o christ_n shall_v he_o have_v his_o mouth_n shut_v up_o and_o shall_v he_o not_o open_v it_o for_o those_o who_o all_o over_o the_o world_n have_v believe_v at_o his_o gospel_n and_o shall_v vigilantius_n a_o live_a dog_n be_v better_a than_o paula_n dead_a lion_n this_o of_o the_o ecclesiaste_n be_v indeed_o to_o some_o purpose_n if_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o paul_n be_v dead_a in_o spirit_n thus_o do_v s._n hierome_n discourse_n as_o a_o catholic_a on_o this_o point_n show_v that_o the_o saint_n with_o much_o more_o reason_n shall_v be_v pray_v unto_o in_o heaven_n then_o on_o earth_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n in_o those_o word_n of_o ecclesiaste_n betwixt_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n whilst_o he_o be_v live_v and_o whilst_o he_o be_v dead_a but_o only_o betwixt_o a_o live_n and_o a_o dead_a body_n and_o he_o call_v vigilantius_n a_o dog_n for_o bark_v against_o the_o saint_n in_o deny_v their_o intercession_n we_o pray_v therefore_o to_o god_n as_o to_o the_o supreme_a power_n to_o grant_v we_o that_o which_o we_o want_v we_o pray_v to_o our_o bless_a lady_n the_o angel_n and_o saint_n not_o to_o grant_v we_o our_o want_n but_o to_o grant_v we_o their_o intercession_n to_o obtain_v they_o of_o god_n for_o us._n and_o in_o this_o the_o catholic_a church_n use_v a_o orderly_a distinction_n even_o in_o word_n when_o we_o pray_v destinguish_v betwixt_o the_o divine_a majesty_n as_o supreme_a and_o the_o saint_n as_o his_o servant_n we_o say_v not_o to_o god_n lord_n pray_v for_o we_o but_o kyrie_fw-la eleyson_fw-la lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o us._n nor_o to_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v we_o say_v christ_n pray_v for_o we_o but_o christ_n eleyson_fw-la christ_n have_v mercy_n upon_o us._n we_o do_v not_o say_v to_o our_o b._n lady_n or_o to_o the_o angel_n or_o saint_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o but_o holy_a mary_n pray_v for_o we_o all_o you_o holy_a saint_n of_o god_n make_v intërcession_n for_o us._n so_o give_v unto_o god_n that_o which_o be_v his_o due_n to_o wit_v the_o supreme_a and_o all_o honour_n both_o in_o himself_o and_o in_o his_o servant_n and_o we_o give_v unto_o the_o saint_n inferior_a honour_n as_o the_o belove_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o follow_v the_o council_n of_o the_o holy_a psalmist_n who_o beginning_n his_o last_o psalm_n be_v inspire_v to_o say_v praise_n god_n in_o his_o saint_n 150._o ps_n 150._o this_o i_o have_v say_v in_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o bless_a saint_n and_o every_o word_n that_o i_o have_v say_v i_o give_v it_o free_o to_o their_o honour_n desire_v their_o prayer_n we_o pray_v particular_o to_o some_o saint_n for_o some_o particular_a benefit_n because_o we_o see_v those_o benefit_n more_o frequent_o grant_v by_o have_v recourse_n unto_o those_o saint_n ●nd_v if_o any_o ask_v why_o god_n grant_v those_o benefit_n rather_o at_o the_o intercession_n of_o those_o then_o of_o other_o saint_n i_o answer_v with_o the_o apostle_n who_o have_v know_v the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n 11._o rom._n 11._o or_o who_o have_v be_v his_o counsellor_n and_o this_o be_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o such_o question_n of_o curiosity_n for_o so_o it_o may_v be_v ask_v why_o god_n will_v determine_v particular_a office_n to_o such_o and_o such_o angel_n yet_o the_o reason_n may_v be_v give_v to_o honour_v the_o merit_n of_o those_o saint_n in_o some_o circumstance_n of_o their_o life_n or_o death_n which_o those_o benefit_n have_v relation_n unto_o so_o woman_n that_o have_v sore_a breast_n obtain_v help_v by_o the_o intercession_n of_o s._n agatha_n who_o breast_n be_v cut_v of_o for_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n s._n apollonia_n be_v call_v upon_o for_o the_o tooth_n ache_v because_o her_o tooth_n be_v strike_v out_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n s._n roch_n be_v invoke_v against_o the_o pestilence_n because_o himself_o be_v infect_v with_o it_o s._n blaze_v against_o pain_n of_o the_o throat_n because_o he_o cure_v a_o child_n that_o be_v like_a to_o die_v of_o a_o bone_n in_o the_o throat_n and_o our_o bless_a lady_n with_o good_a reason_n be_v call_v upon_o by_o woman_n in_o travail_n because_o she_o be_v the_o joy_n glory_n and_o comfort_n of_o all_o woman_n who_o in_o her_o child_n bear_v be_v exempt_v from_o those_o pain_n and_o it_o please_v god_n that_o those_o miracle_n he_o remember_v by_o us._n if_o any_o ask_v why_o in_o some_o place_n more_o than_o other_o we_o pray_v for_o such_o and_o such_o benefit_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o may_v be_v many_o reason_n why_o god_n will_v oblige_v especial_o the_o inhabitans_fw-la of_o that_o place_n and_o honour_v it_o with_o miracle_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a satisfaction_n i_o ask_v of_o he_o why_o at_o the_o probatica_fw-la pond_n in_o jerusalem_n miraculous_a cure_n be_v obtain_v rather_o than_o in_o other_o place_n and_o why_o only_o one_o be_v cure_v at_o a_o time_n and_o no_o more_o and_o why_o the_o leprous_a prince_n of_o syria_n be_v send_v to_o be_v wash_v in_o lordan_n rather_o than_o in_o other_o water_n and_o to_o be_v wash_v seven_o time_n rather_o than_o any_o other_o number_n if_o he_o give_v i_o a_o good_a reason_n for_o these_o the_o same_o will_v i_o give_v he_o to_o his_o question_n if_o he_o refer_v i_o to_o the_o divine_a will_n and_o pleasure_n so_o will_v i_o refer_v he_o have_v declare_v who_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v to_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o some_o impediment_n that_o hinder_v we_o in_o the_o obtain_n of_o our_o prayer_n the_o first_o and_o great_a impediment_n that_o hinder_v the_o obtain_n of_o our_o prayer_n be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o evil_n
god_n because_o god_n show_v himself_o there_o in_o glory_n as_o a_o king_n reign_v in_o the_o mind_n and_o heart_n of_o his_o saint_n who_o be_v in_o perfect_a love_n and_o subjection_n to_o he_o and_o suppose_v here_o that_o which_o we_o pray_v for_o before_o to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n we_o may_v be_v understand_v to_o pray_v that_o our_o soul_n may_v be_v free_v out_o of_o the_o prison_n of_o our_o body_n 1._o phil._n 1._o and_o come_v soon_o to_o that_o happy_a state_n as_o the_o apostle_n desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v the_o first_o thing_n 6._o mat._n 6._o which_o we_o ought_v to_o ask_v for_o ourselves_o seek_v first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o justice_n of_o he_o and_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v give_v you_o beside_o christ_n say_v this_o to_o his_o disciple_n after_o that_o he_o have_v deliner_v the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la to_o they_o in_o which_o he_o teach_v they_o first_o to_o ask_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o then_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v good_a for_o themselves_o and_o among_o all_o those_o thing_n in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 102._o tract_n 102._o this_o be_v say_v saint_n augustin_n that_o full_a and_o perfect_a joy_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v for_o and_o which_o oll_n our_o prayer_n ought_v to_o aim_v at_o as_o the_o only_a true_a joy_n here_o the_o roman_a catechism_n admonish_v pastor_n to_o excite_v their_o people_n to_o the_o love_n of_o that_o kingdom_n by_o the_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v indeed_o frequent_a enough_o for_o it_o but_o in_o order_n to_o this_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v sufficient_a that_o christ_n have_v say_v in_o few_o word_n ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a for_o what_o joy_n shall_v we_o desire_v but_o that_o which_o be_v full_a joy_n and_o fullness_n of_o joy_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v but_o in_o heaven_n every_o thing_n aspire_v to_o that_o in_o which_o its_o chief_a and_o full_a joy_n consist_v sensible_n thing_n to_o that_o which_o please_v the_o sense_n live_v thing_n to_o the_o conservation_n of_o life_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v only_o be_v and_o no_o life_n delight_v in_o that_o which_o be_v according_a to_o their_o nature_n and_o seek_v to_o it_o because_o there_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o their_o joy_n and_o shall_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n which_o be_v reasonable_a above_o all_o these_o thing_n forsake_v that_o which_o be_v its_o chief_a and_o full_a joy_n all_o corporal_a thing_n tend_v with_o violence_n thither_o where_o their_o chief_a joy_n be_v and_o rest_v not_o content_v until_o they_o enjoy_v they_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o planet_n rejoice_v in_o their_o course_n the_o star_n in_o their_o station_n and_o keep_v themselves_o in_o they_o because_o there_o be_v the_o fullnes_n of_o their_o joy_n the_o creature_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v some_o above_o the_o earth_n some_o within_o it_o and_o some_o part_n within_o and_o part_n without_o it_o as_o tree_n and_o herb_n and_o will_v not_o live_v otherwise_o because_o there_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o their_o delight_n the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o fresh_a water_n seek_v always_o to_o be_v there_o and_o strive_v by_o violence_n to_o that_o place_n light_a thinig_n tend_v upward_o and_o heavy_a thing_n to_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o earth_n because_o there_o they_o have_v the_o fullness_n of_o their_o joy_n the_o fullness_n of_o our_o joy_n be_v no_o where_o but_o in_o heaven_n and_o why_o do_v not_o we_o then_o seek_v to_o it_o and_o abhor_v all_o that_o hinder_v we_o of_o it_o we_o live_v in_o this_o world_n as_o it_o be_v be_v out_o of_o our_o element_n in_o a_o place_n most_o loathsome_a to_o our_o soul_n a_o deadly_a prison_n condemn_v to_o die_v continual_o and_o in_o danger_n of_o eternal_a death_n 7._o rom._n 7._o what_o joy_n can_v we_o take_v in_o this_o condition_n unhappy_a that_o i_o be_o say_v the_o apostle_n who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v diverse_o understand_v first_o it_o be_v general_a over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o he_o govern_v and_o provide_v for_o his_o subject_n which_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o all_o creature_n second_o it_o be_v more_o particular_o over_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o people_n of_o a_o kingdom_n gather_v together_o to_o worship_v he_o as_o their_o true_a king_n three_o more_o particular_o yet_o his_o kingdom_n be_v with_o the_o just_a in_o who_o heart_n he_o reign_v by_o grace_n of_o who_o christ_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v with_o you_o 17._o luc._n 17._o last_o his_o kingdom_n be_v most_o especial_o over_o the_o bless_a to_o who_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n he_o shall_v say_v 25._o mat._n 25._o come_v the_o bless_a of_o my_o father_n possess_v you_o the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o here_o we_o ask_v that_o we_o and_o all_o people_n may_v so_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n that_o in_o the_o end_n we_o may_v obtain_v the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n for_o this_o kingdom_n be_v not_o otherwise_o obtain_v but_o by_o such_o faith_n as_o s._n 5._o gal._n 5._o paul_n require_v which_o work_v by_o charity_n as_o by_o those_o who_o have_v give_v meat_n drink_n and_o clothes_n for_o god_n sake_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v exclude_v that_o come_v with_o the_o profession_n only_o of_o catholics_n say_v 7._o mat._n 7._o lord_n lord_z open_z unto_o we_o but_o bring_v not_o with_o they_o the_o light_n of_o good_a work_n not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n of_o which_o point_n saint_n augustine_n write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la in_o which_o he_o show_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n be_v misconstrue_v by_o some_o of_o those_o time_n as_o though_o he_o require_v not_o good_a work_n after_o baptism_n 14._o cap._n 14._o but_o that_o faith_n alone_o do_v justify_v and_o therefore_o say_v he_o the_o other_o epistle_n of_o peter_n james_n and_o jude_n be_v write_v to_o avouch_v vehement_o that_o fait_z without_o good_a work_n profit_v nothing_o the_o three_o petition_n thy_o will_n be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n man_n have_v not_o a_o great_a enemy_n than_o his_o own_o will_n when_o it_o be_v not_o govern_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n all_o good_a thing_n which_o we_o have_v come_v by_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o divine_a will_n and_o all_o evil_n that_o befall_v we_o come_v through_o the_o malice_n of_o our_o own_o will_n the_o ignorance_n of_o our_o understanding_n never_o hurt_v our_o soul_n but_o when_o it_o be_v voluntary_a and_o all_o our_o sin_n proceed_v from_o thence_o that_o either_o we_o will_v not_o do_v what_o we_o know_v be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o will_v not_o know_v what_o we_o be_v to_o do_v 5._o esa_n 5._o hence_o be_v that_o curse_n of_o the_o prophet_n woe_n untie_v you_o that_o call_v evil_a good_a and_o good_a evil_n put_v darkness_n light_a and_o light_a darkness_n put_v bitter_a for_o sweet_a and_o sweet_a for_o bitter_a this_o curse_n come_v by_o the_o evil_a of_o our_o will_n because_o we_o will_v follow_v our_o own_o blindness_n and_o not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v our_o rule_n and_o guide_v in_o all_o thing_n the_o malice_n of_o man_n begin_v present_o to_o be_v much_o upon_o earth_n and_o the_o cogitation_n of_o their_o hart_n be_v so_o bend_v upon_o upon_o evil_a that_o a_o deluge_n of_o water_n be_v send_v to_o destroy_v they_o this_o evil_n be_v in_o their_o heart_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o their_o will_n because_o they_o follow_v not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o be_v sweet_a and_o lightsome_a but_o their_o own_o will_n which_o be_v dark_a and_o bitter_a in_o effect_n and_o so_o have_v all_o the_o evil_n of_o the_o world_n come_v therefore_o we_o be_v topray_n and_o to_o labour_v with_o ourselves_o for_o conformity_n with_o the_o will_n of_o god_n beside_o we_o not_o know_v what_o be_v best_a for_o we_o ask_v that_o some_o time_n which_o be_v hurtful_a as_o sick_a folk_n in_o a_o fever_n desire_n that_o which_o hurt_v they_o and_o as_o child_n who_o will_v take_v poison_n for_o treacle_n if_o they_o have_v there_o own_o will_n and_o therefore_o sick_a folk_n and_o child_n have_v keeper_n who_o will_n they_o must_v follow_v and_o be_v direct_v by_o we_o be_v as_o child_n in_o our_o will_n and_o understanding_n both_o deficient_a by_o sin_n god_n be_v our_o
keeper_n we_o must_v be_v rule_v by_o he_o and_o pray_v for_o obedience_n to_o his_o holy_a will_n that_o we_o may_v follow_v it_o and_o then_o all_o will_v be_v well_o with_o us._n in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n we_o pray_v not_o here_o that_o we_o may_v do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n with_o that_o perfection_n with_o which_o it_o be_v do_v in_o heaven_n for_o that_o be_v unpossible_a but_o that_o as_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n perform_v his_o will_n according_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o their_o state_n so_o that_o we_o may_v perform_v it_o according_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o our_o present_a state_n and_o that_o as_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n have_v a_o most_o perfect_a conformity_n with_o the_o will_n of_o god_n so_o that_o we_o may_v imitate_v they_o every_o one_o in_o the_o vocation_n in_o which_o he_o be_v call_v follow_v the_o divine_a pleasure_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o say_v willing_o with_o holy_a job_n as_o it_o have_v please_v our_o lord_n so_o be_v it_o do_v 1._o job._n 1._o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v bless_v the_o four_o petition_n give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n this_o and_o the_o petition_n that_o follow_v be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o those_o that_o go_v before_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v hallow_v &_o that_o we_o may_v gain_v his_o bless_a kingdom_n for_o all_o whatsoever_o we_o prayfor_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o gain_n of_o that_o kingdom_n dem._n l._n 2._o deserm_n dem._n we_o pray_v say_v s._n augustine_n not_o for_o temporal_a thing_n as_o our_o true_a good_n but_o as_o our_o necessary_n because_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o imperfect_a and_o therefore_o not_o absolute_o good_a nor_o to_o be_v pray_v for_o but_o as_o they_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o have_v a_o partial_a and_o participate_v goodness_n from_o he_o whether_o you_o eat_v or_o drink_v 1.10_o cor._n 1.10_o or_o do_v any_o other_o thing_n do_v all_o thing_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o the_o same_o apostle_n desire_v the_o roman_n to_o pray_v for_o he_o that_o he_o may_v escape_v the_o hand_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o that_o his_o service_n may_v be_v acceptable_a where_o he_o refer_v the_o escape_n of_o his_o enemy_n to_o the_o glory_n and_o service_n of_o god_n yet_o we_o may_v see_v by_o this_o petition_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o pray_v for_o temporal_a thing_n for_o although_o god_n of_o his_o own_o goodness_n do_v provide_v sufficient_o for_o we_o yet_o so_o as_o that_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o ask_v and_o pray_v for_o that_o which_o we_o stand_v need_n of_o so_o the_o patriarch_n jacob_n pray_v and_o make_v a_o vow_n of_o some_o particular_a devotion_n to_o be_v do_v for_o the_o obtain_n then_o of_o a_o prosperous_a ●ourney_n say_v if_o god_n shall_v be_v with_o i_o 28._o c●n._n 28._o and_o shall_v keep_v i_o in_o the_o way_n by_o the_o which_o i_o walk_v and_o shall_v give_v i_o bread_n to_o eat_v and_o raiment_n to_o put_v on_o and_o i_o shall_v be_v return_v prosperous_o to_o my_o father_n house_n the_o lord_n shall_v be_v my_o god_n and_o this_o stone_n which_o i_o have_v erect_v for_o a_o title_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o thou_o shall_v give_v to_o i_o i_o will_v offer_v tithe_n to_o thou_o all_o this_o do_v this_o holy_a man_n do_v that_o god_n may_v bless_v he_o and_o supply_v his_o want_n in_o that_o voyage_n by_o bread_n all_o corporal_a necessary_n be_v here_o understand_v for_o food_n be_v the_o most_o necessary_a of_o all_o corporal_a thing_n and_o bread-being_a the_o most_o necessary_a of_o all_o foode_n it_o may_v proper_o signify_v all_o temporal_a necessary_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n bread_n be_v take_v general_o for_o any_o kind_n of_o meat_n as_o in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v where_o lacob_n pray_v for_o bread_n and_o raiment_n and_o luc._n 14._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o a_o certain_a prince_n of_o the_o pharisys_n to_o eat_v bread_n 14._o luc._n 14._o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o eat_v meat_n in_o general_a for_o it_o be_v a_o feast_n which_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi then_o make_v for_o his_o friend_n here_o we_o may_v conceive_v something_o of_o the_o great_a loss_n which_o we_o have_v incur_v by_o sin_n man_n whilst_o he_o be_v in_o paradise_n and_o in_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v well_o provide_v for_o of_o all_o corporal_a thing_n the_o tree_n of_o life_n supply_v he_o so_o that_o he_o can_v fear_v no_o want_n but_o fall_v into_o sin_n he_o fall_v into_o fear_n and_o shame_n and_o begin_v to_o want_v meat_n and_o clothes_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n and_o be_v glad_a to_o take_v pain_n and_o to_o work_v hard_a to_o get_v that_o which_o he_o stand_v need_n of_o and_o for_o all_o his_o pain_n take_v be_v still_o in_o fear_n of_o want_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v teach_v here_o to_o humble_v ourselves_o to_o god_n and_o to_o pray_v to_o he_o to_o bless_v our_o labour_n and_o to_o give_v fruit_n to_o they_o which_o otherwise_o be_v vain_a and_o fruitless_a and_o to_o show_v this_o he_o send_v sometime_o excess_n of_o heat_n cold_n thunder_n drought_n inundation_n and_o the_o like_a by_o which_o he_o deminish_v our_o allowance_n and_o take_v as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v from_o us._n what_o a_o folly_n than_o be_v it_o in_o rich_a and_o worldly_a man_n for_o the_o love_n of_o riches_n or_o for_o any_o worldly_a respect_n to_o forsake_v god_n and_o to_o sin_n against_o he_o if_o god_n shall_v blast_v their_o corn_n burn_v their_o grass_n send_v disease_n to_o their_o good_n fire_n to_o their_o house_n or_o some_o grievous_a lameness_n or_o deformity_n to_o their_o person_n what_o will_v they_o do_v then_o job_n be_v rich_a enough_o and_o have_v honour_n enough_o as_o a_o prince_n yet_o he_o come_v to_o loose_v all_o and_o to_o be_v in_o great_a want_n and_o such_o misery_n as_o to_o lie_v upon_o a_o dunghill_n and_o to_o scrape_v away_o the_o putrefaction_n from_o his_o body_n with_o shell_n and_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o find_v beside_o he_o this_o will_v god_n permit_v in_o he_o to_o show_v that_o all_o our_o felicity_n be_v in_o his_o hand_n and_o that_o their_o be_v none_o rich_a and_o prosperous_a but_o by_o he_o and_o because_o he_o take_v all_o patient_o and_o remain_v still_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n he_o be_v bless_v again_o with_o temporal_a prosperity_n double_a to_o that_o which_o before_o he_o enjoy_v antiochus_n be_v a_o king_n far_o great_a than_o job_n yet_o less_o than_o god_n who_o for_o his_o pride_n and_o cruelty_n destroy_v his_o arm_n and_o bring_v he_o to_o that_o misery_n that_o as_o holy_a scripture_n say_v he_o that_o seem_v to_o himself_o to_o rule_v even_o over_o the_o wane_v of_o the_o sea_n and_o to_o weigh_v the_o height_n of_o mountain_n in_o a_o balance_n 2.9_o mach._n 2.9_o now_o be_v humble_v to_o the_o ground_n be_v carry_v in_o a_o portative_a seat_n testify_v the_o manifest_a power_n of_o god_n in_o himself_o so_o that_o out_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o impious_a man_n worm_n crawl_v abundant_o and_o his_o live_a flesh_n fall_v of_o for_o pain_n with_o his_o smell_n also_o and_o stink_n the_o army_n be_v annoy_v now_o what_o better_a be_v this_o man_n for_o all_o his_o worldly_a greatness_n when_o god_n will_v thus_o punish_v he_o he_o be_v make_v a_o example_n to_o other_o of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o because_o he_o make_v not_o good_a use_n of_o his_o affliction_n as_o job_n do_v but_o remain_v still_o in_o his_o wickedness_n he_o be_v never_o restore_v to_o prosperity_n again_o but_o die_v miserable_o it_o be_v therefore_o a_o vain_a thing_n to_o forsake_v god_n for_o temporal_a prosperity_n see_v that_o all_o blessing_n proceed_v from_o he_o and_o can_v be_v have_v but_o by_o he_o and_o yet_o that_o which_o be_v most_o absurd_a of_o all_o these_o very_a man_n that_o go_v to_o the_o devil_n for_o riches_n and_o for_o a_o pleasant_a life_n come_v to_o god_n to_o ask_v bread_n of_o he_o in_o their_o prayer_n they_o serve_v the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o ask_v their_o livelihood_n of_o god_n be_v not_o this_o absurd_a servant_n ask_v their_o wage_n of_o the_o master_n who_o they_o serve_v as_o soldier_n do_v of_o their_o captain_n and_o general_n be_v their_o ever_o any_o soldier_n that_o go_v to_o the_o general_a of_o the_o enemy_n camp_n to_o ask_v pay_n or_o provision_n if_o then_o worldling_n you_o will_v serve_v the_o world_n why_o do_v you_o ask_v your_o
that_o in_o this_o respect_n as_o she_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o god_n she_o shall_v be_v endow_v with_o it_o this_o be_v express_o avouch_v by_o s._n anselme_n it_o be_v decent_a say_v he_o that_o she_o shall_v shine_v with_o such_o purity_n 15._o l._n de_fw-fr conceptu_fw-la virg_n li._n c._n 15._o that_o under_o heaven_n a_o great_a can_v not_o be_v devise_v other_o saint_n say_v in_o substance_n the_o same_o when_o in_o glory_n and_o sanctity_n they_o prefer_v she_o before_o all_o creature_n because_o they_o think_v that_o such_o sanctity_n be_v most_o suitable_a and_o congruous_a to_o her_o dignity_n as_o she_o be_v such_o a_o mother_n and_o that_o the_o more_o that_o they_o honour_v she_o the_o more_o they_o honour_a god_n incarnate_v in_o she_o and_o of_o she_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n say_v saint_n hierome_n but_o whatsoever_o be_v worthy_o attribute_v to_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n est_fw-la hier._n ep_v ad_fw-la paul_n &_o eusto_n to_o 9_o bern._n ser_n 4._o super_fw-la missus_fw-la est_fw-la that_o appertain_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o her_o son_n and_o s._n bernard_n whatsoever_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o mother_n praise_n that_o belong_v to_o her_o son_n therefore_o in_o attribute_v of_o sanctity_n to_o she_o and_o in_o honour_v she_o we_o honour_v he_o and_o the_o more_o sanctity_n that_o we_o attribute_v to_o she_o and_o the_o more_o that_o we_o honour_v she_o the_o more_o we_o honour_v he_o it_o be_v a_o say_v dishonourable_a to_o christ_n to_o impute_v any_o heinous_a sin_n unto_o his_o mother_n with_o who_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v no_o mention_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v make_v and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o dishonour_n to_o he_o to_o make_v she_o that_o bear_v he_o and_o have_v the_o education_n of_o he_o to_o be_v a_o sinner_n so_o be_v it_o most_o for_o his_o honour_n to_o have_v she_o a_o saint_n and_o above_o all_o saint_n we_o have_v then_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o christ_n honour_v she_o that_o she_o take_v it_o as_o a_o honour_n to_o herself_o and_o that_o s._n elizabeth_n and_o the_o woman_n of_o the_o gospel_n honour_v she_o as_o she_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o such_o a_o son_n and_o we_o have_v also_o that_o it_o be_v most_o decent_a and_o become_v her_o dignity_n that_o her_o bless_a soul_n shall_v be_v adorn_v with_o the_o high_a grace_n and_o sanctity_n that_o ever_o any_o pure_a creature_n have_v i_o conclude_v this_o point_n with_o a_o lesser_a yet_o good_a authority_n it_o be_v of_o sibylla_n tiburtina_n praise_v the_o b._n virgin_n for_o her_o maternity_n o_o nimium_fw-la foelix_fw-la caeli_fw-la dignissima_fw-la mater_fw-la quae_fw-la tantam_fw-la sacro_fw-la lactabat_fw-la ab_fw-la ubere_fw-la prolem_fw-la o_o very_a happy_a and_o most_o worthy_a mother_n of_o heaven_n who_o sacred_a breast_n give_v suck_v to_o such_o a_o son_n where_o you_o see_v she_o honour_v and_o pronounce_v happy_a for_o her_o corporal_a propinquity_n with_o christ_n let_v now_o all_o christian_n that_o love_n christ_n love_v she_o who_o he_o love_v and_o honour_v she_o who_o he_o honour_v if_o he_o be_v a_o good_a son_n he_o will_v make_v his_o mother_n to_o be_v worthy_a of_o honour_n and_o if_o we_o be_v good_a servant_n we_o will_v honour_v the_o mother_n of_o our_o master_n and_o so_o we_o honour_v she_o as_o his_o mother_n not_o that_o it_o be_v the_o physical_a or_o moral_a cause_n of_o her_o sanctity_n for_o that_o be_v the_o divine_a grace_n and_o her_o own_o merit_n by_o cooperate_n with_o it_o but_o that_o her_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o such_o a_o son_n be_v in_o itself_o honourable_a when_o we_o say_v the_o mother_n of_o god_n we_o mean_v that_o she_o be_v the_o true_a mother_n of_o he_o who_o be_v true_a god_n which_o all_o good_a christian_n believe_n and_o none_o but_o such_o as_o nestorian_a haeretik_n will_v deny_v for_o as_o we_o say_v true_o that_o s._n elizabeth_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o a_o prophet_n but_o not_o as_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n but_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n which_o he_o receive_v of_o she_o so_o we_o say_v true_o that_o our_o b._n lady_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o god_n though_o not_o as_o he_o be_v god_n but_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n which_o proceed_v from_o she_o pray_v for_o we_o sinner_n as_o for_o the_o power_n and_o acceptance_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n prayer_n it_o be_v far_o great_a than_o we_o can_v express_v what_o if_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o it_o please_v god_n better_o that_o we_o go_v to_o she_o to_o pray_v for_o we_o then_o that_o we_o come_v immediate_o to_o himself_o certain_o we_o may_v say_v that_o it_o please_v he_o better_o that_o we_o bring_v his_o prime_a favourite_n to_o wit_n his_o mother_n to_o pray_v for_o we_o then_o that_o we_o come_v by_o ourselves_o only_o without_o she_o to_o he_o and_o that_o he_o delight_v more_o and_o grant_v rather_o at_o her_o prayer_n then_o at_o we_o which_o be_v but_o a_o small_a praise_n to_o she_o i_o will_v say_v more_o and_o that_o be_v that_o i_o think_v without_o doubt_n there_o be_v no_o devotion_n whatsoever_o that_o god_n have_v approve_v of_o by_o so_o many_o miracle_n as_o the_o devotion_n to_o our_o b._n lady_n and_o that_o those_o that_o be_v true_o devote_a to_o she_o need_v not_o much_o fear_n to_o fall_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n nor_o continue_v in_o that_o devotion_n to_o have_v a_o evil_a death_n but_o my_o word_n only_o be_v of_o little_a value_n you_o shall_v hear_v what_o the_o saint_n and_o learned_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n have_v say_v of_o her_o intercession_n 8._o benau_n in_o speculo_fw-la mariae_fw-la c._n 8._o first_o s._n bonaventure_n proove_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n that_o she_o be_v more_o careful_a and_o solicitous_a for_o her_o client_n then_o any_o of_o the_o saint_n and_o whether_o her_o power_n be_v equal_a with_o her_o care_n you_o shall_v hear_v what_o other_o say_v germanus_n constantinopolitanus_n a_o very_a ancient_a author_n speak_v this_o sentence_n to_o she_o there_o be_v none_o save_v but_o by_o thou_o o_o most_o holy_a virgin_n zona_fw-la germ._n in_o zona_fw-la there_o be_v none_o deliver_v from_o evil_n but_o by_o thou_o o_o most_o pure_a there_o be_v no_o gift_n grant_v but_o by_o thou_o o_o most_o chaste_a there_o be_v none_o that_o have_v the_o favour_n to_o be_v pity_v but_o by_o thou_o o_o most_o honourable_a mark_v i_o pray_v you_o how_o general_a these_o word_n be_v that_o no_o good_a be_v obtain_v nor_o evil_o prevent_v but_o by_o her_o mean_n s._n anselme_n in_o the_o book_n which_o he_o write_v of_o her_o praise_n pray_v to_o she_o say_v that_o god_n have_v so_o exalt_v she_o that_o he_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n possible_a to_o she_o and_o that_o she_o can_v ask_v nothing_o but_o it_o be_v grant_v but_o s._n peter_n damian_n go_v further_a to_o say_v the_o same_o by_o a_o very_a high_a expression_n of_o eloquence_n mar._n ser._n de_fw-fr nat._n mar._n she_o go_v up_o say_v he_o to_o the_o golden_a altar_n of_o reconciliation_n not_o to_o ask_v but_o to_o command_v not_o as_o a_o handmaid_n but_o as_o a_o mistress_n here_o a_o haeretike_n will_v catch_v at_o his_o word_n and_o think_v that_o he_o have_v something_o to_o take_v hold_n of_o but_o he_o shall_v be_v deceive_v for_o this_o be_v only_o a_o kind_n of_o rhetoric_n which_o the_o saint_n will_v use_v to_o setforth_o the_o liberality_n of_o god_n at_o the_o prayer_n of_o his_o servant_n which_o be_v such_o as_o though_o his_o benignity_n nignity_n bind_v he_o to_o obey_v their_o desire_n and_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o rhetoric_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v teach_v they_o and_o have_v warrant_v by_o his_o own_o example_n himself_o use_v it_o josue_n the_o captain_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n have_v put_v his_o enemy_n to_o flight_n and_o want_v day_n to_o pursue_v they_o make_v his_o prayer_n and_o command_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n to_o stand_v still_o until_o he_o have_v take_v revenge_n of_o they_o where_o upon_o holy_a scripture_n say_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n stand_v still_o our_o lord_n obey_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o man_n 10._o jos_n 10._o as_o though_o holy_a josue_n by_o prayer_n have_v have_v god_n at_o obedience_n s._n bernard_n be_v allwais_o mellifluous_a yet_o never_o so_o much_o as_o when_o he_o have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o our_o b._n lady_n assump_n ber._n ser_n in_o vigilia_fw-la nat._n dom._n ber._n ser_n de_fw-fr assump_n he_o shall_v close_v up_o the_o choir_n of_o the_o father_n with_o these_o few_o word_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o god_n will_v grant_v nothing_o but_o it_o must_v pass_v through_o ave-mary_n hand_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o commend_v she_o so_o affectionate_o for_o mercy_n towards_o her_o client_n that_o for_o
the_o end_n his_o bless_a and_o glorious_a sight_n we_o purpose_v to_o use_v those_o mean_n which_o he_o have_v procure_v for_o our_o obtain_n of_o it_o three_o at_o mass_n we_o be_v inflame_v unto_o act_n of_o charity_n and_o vehement_a love_n of_o god_n have_v before_o our_o eye_n such_o a_o testimony_n of_o his_o love_n towards_o we_o that_o he_o will_v send_v his_o belove_a son_n to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o imperfection_n of_o our_o nature_n and_o to_o be_v so_o unworthy_o treat_v and_o kill_v to_o redeem_v we_o that_o kill_v he_o this_o shall_v make_v the_o hart_n of_o a_o christian_n to_o melt_v with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o without_o doubt_v it_o will_v do_v so_o if_o we_o can_v right_o consider_v and_o apprehend_v it_o and_o the_o whole_a scope_n of_o the_o mass_n tend_v to_o this_o to_o imprint_v in_o our_o mind_n a_o lively_a apprehension_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n we_o then_o praise_v and_o extol_v in_o the_o high_a manner_n that_o we_o can_v his_o sacred_a merit_n we_o set_v he_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o propose_v he_o as_o our_o mediator_n before_o his_o eternal_a father_n beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o look_v upon_o our_o sin_n but_o upon_o his_o own_o dear_a son_n so_o handle_v for_o the_o love_n of_o we_o to_o obtain_v our_o pardon_n and_o to_o reconcile_v we_o to_o he_o four_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o thanks_o give_v to_o god_n for_o the_o infinite_a and_o immense_a benefit_n which_o he_o bestow_v allwais_o upon_o we_o and_o especial_o for_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n if_o we_o give_v but_o a_o little_a alm_n or_o do_v never_o so_o small_a a_o courtesy_n to_o our_o neighbour_n we_o expect_v at_o least_o to_o hatie_n thank_v return_v present_o for_o it_o why_o then_o shall_v not_o we_o be_v as_o thankful_a to_o god_n as_o we_o will_v have_v our_o neighbour_n to_o be_v to_o we_o and_o we_o have_v nothing_o of_o our_o own_o with_o which_o we_o can_v worthy_o gratify_v the_o benefit_n of_o god_n therefore_o christ_n will_v leave_v to_o we_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o own_o body_n that_o in_o it_o we_o may_v have_v a_o worthy_a offering_n and_o a_o rich_a and_o precious_a gift_n by_o which_o our_o gratitude_n may_v be_v acceptable_a to_o he_o five_o by_o be_v present_a at_o mass_n we_o be_v dispose_v to_o repentance_n for_o our_o mortal_a sin_n and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n by_o a_o good_a confession_n for_o as_o the_o israelit_n that_o be_v sting_v by_o the_o fiery_a serpent_n be_v cure_v by_o behold_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n erect_v so_o we_o by_o meditate_v upon_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o by_o behold_v he_o elevate_v on_o the_o cros_n be_v cute_v of_o the_o wound_n of_o the_o fiery_a serpent_n of_o hell_n and_o those_o that_o hear_v mass_n in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n obtain_v a_o plentiful_a remission_n of_o their_o venial_a sin_n much_o more_o than_o by_o any_o other_o good_a work_n six_o the_o mass_n be_v not_o only_o beneficial_a to_o the_o live_n but_o also_o to_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o most_o efficacious_a work_n of_o charity_n which_o can_v be_v do_v for_o they_o by_o the_o general_a commemoration_n which_o be_v then_o make_v for_o the_o soul_n of_o purgatory_n and_o they_o when_o they_o be_v release_v be_v not_o forgetful_a of_o those_o that_o help_v they_o in_o misery_n seaventh_o those_o that_o be_v present_a at_o mass_n may_v receive_v the_o b._n sacrament_n with_o more_o devotion_n at_o least_o spiritual_o in_o hart_n and_o mind_n unite_n themselves_o with_o a_o ardent_a desire_n to_o the_o life_n give_v flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o no_o doubt_n but_o shall_v carry_v away_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o sacred_a food_n in_o their_o heart_n for_o as_o it_o be_v not_o fit_v that_o those_o who_o wait_v at_o the_o table_n of_o prince_n or_o at_o great_a feast_n shall_v go_v away_o hungry_a for_o want_v of_o meat_n so_o those_o that_o attend_v at_o this_o bless_a feast_n shall_v not_o depart_v unsatiate_v with_o it_o but_o even_o as_o one_o that_o enter_v into_o a_o wine_n cellar_n of_o strong_a and_o precious_a wine_n be_v comfort_v and_o strengthen_v with_o the_o strength_n and_o smell_v of_o they_o although_o he_o taste_v they_o not_o so_o those_o that_o be_v present_a at_o this_o sacred_a banquet_n eat_v spiritual_o refresh_v comfort_v and_o fill_v with_o the_o virtue_n and_o strength_n of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n although_o corporal_o they_o receive_v it_o not_o final_o not_o only_a the_o priest_n that_o say_v mass_n but_o all_o that_o be_v present_a offer_v up_o that_o mass_n with_o he_o teceive_v spiritual_a distribution_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n who_o give_v something_o to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o for_o the_o offering_n which_o they_o give_v to_o he_o and_o not_o only_o spiritual_a but_o also_o temporal_a benefit_n be_v obtain_v by_o the_o mass_n because_o as_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n it_o may_v be_v offer_v up_o for_o the_o obtain_n of_o any_o good_a or_o the_o avoid_v of_o any_o evil_n whatsoever_o jacob_n offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o good_a success_n of_o his_o journey_n melchisedech_n offer_v sacrifice_n in_o thanksgiving_a for_o his_o victory_n no_o in_o thanksgiving_a for_o his_o preservation_n in_o the_o deluge_n job_n for_o his_o child_n sacrifice_n be_v offer_v for_o woman_n before_o their_o delivery_n and_o after_o their_o delivery_n for_o their_o purification_n dei_fw-la chrys_n ho._n 21._o in_o act_n aug._n l._n 22_o cap._n 1._o de_fw-la ciu_o dei_fw-la and_o for_o bodily_a health_n and_o cleanse_v from_o leprosy_n and_o other_o impurity_n saint_n chrysostome_n mention_v how_o that_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v in_o his_o time_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o for_o temperatnes_n of_o air_n saint_n augustine_n relate_v how_o that_o himself_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v offer_v in_o house_n haunt_v with_o evil_a spirit_n and_o that_o they_o be_v expel_v by_o it_o saint_n bede_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o gentleman_n that_o be_v miraculous_o deliver_v out_o of_o captivity_n by_o have_v mass_n say_v for_o he_o and_o saint_n anthony_n archbishop_n of_o florence_n common_o call_v saint_n anthonine_n relate_v of_o the_o man_n the_o one_o of_o which_o who_o have_v not_o hear_v mass_n on_o a_o holy_a day_n be_v sudden_o strike_v dead_a with_o thunder_n and_o the_o other_o be_v save_v by_o miracle_n for_o that_o he_o have_v hear_v mass_n by_o all_o which_o we_o may_v see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o benefit_n but_o it_o may_v be_v obtain_v by_o the_o mass_n and_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o efficacious_a for_o the_o obtain_n of_o benefit_n as_o to_o procure_v mass_n to_o be_v say_v for_o that_o end_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o devotion_n very_o acceptable_a to_o god_n that_o which_o many_o pious_a people_n have_v of_o hear_v mass_n every_o day_n and_o a_o devotion_n which_o saint_n augustine_n have_v commend_v in_o his_o mother_n saint_n monica_n that_o she_o let_v no_o day_n pass_v without_o be_v present_a at_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o parent_n be_v please_v to_o see_v their_o child_n come_v every_o day_n to_o acknowledge_v their_o superiority_n and_o to_o do_v their_o filial_a duty_n to_o they_o so_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o please_v to_o god_n to_o see_v we_o his_o child_n come_v every_o day_n as_o it_o be_v to_o ask_v his_o blessing_n by_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n as_o the_o worship_n due_a and_o proper_a to_o he_o from_o we_o and_o as_o parent_n be_v move_v with_o tenderness_n towards_o their_o child_n to_o pardon_v their_o fault_n and_o to_o cherish_v and_o bestow_v gift_n on_o they_o when_o they_o see_v they_o continue_v this_o daily_a submission_n and_o duty_n to_o they_o so_o the_o love_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v move_v towards_o we_o to_o pardon_v our_o sin_n and_o to_o bestow_v grace_n upon_o we_o when_o he_o see_v we_o every_o day_n at_o mass_n we_o ought_v then_o to_o conceive_v a_o very_a great_a devotion_n to_o this_o holy_a sacrifice_n and_o with_o all_o modesty_n silence_n and_o reverence_n to_o be_v present_a at_o it_o always_o when_o we_o be_v go_v to_o mass_n let_v we_o think_v that_o we_o be_v then_o go_v to_o present_v ourselves_o before_o the_o divine_a majesty_n to_o offer_v to_o he_o a_o very_a rich_a and_o precious_a offering_n the_o great_a that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n that_o which_o astonish_a heaven_n and_o earth_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o we_o may_v imagine_v that_o we_o be_v go_v to_o mount_n caluary_n to_o see_v the_o very_a crucify_a of_o christ_n and_o that_o join_v ourselves_o to_o the_o company_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n and_o of_o saint_n john_n evangelist_n
33._o l._n 3._o c._n 43.44_o l_o 2._o cont_n gauden_n c._n 3_o l._n de_fw-fr untco_fw-mi bap_n ●●s_o c_o 15._o ep_n 48._o l._n 2._o cont_n pet●l●_n c._n 19_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o author_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o they_o must_v therefore_o show_v some_o just_a cause_n why_o they_o go_v forth_o and_o separate_v themselves_o for_o as_o s._n augustine_n allude_v to_o the_o holy_a proverb_n c._n 30._o often_o object_v against_o the_o donatist_n the_o evil_a child_n call_v himself_o just_a but_o he_o can_v not_o excuse_v his_o go_v forth_o and_o in_o another_o place_n you_o must_v come_v and_o give_v a_o account_n of_o your_o separation_n but_o none_o of_o they_o have_v a_o just_a cause_n nor_o can_v give_v a_o better_a account_n of_o their_o separation_n than_o those_o who_o they_o confess_v to_o be_v false_a church_n therefore_o they_o be_v all_o false_a church_n i_o have_v now_o sufficient_o perform_v one_o thing_n which_o i_o promise_v in_o the_o title_n of_o this_o book_n religion_n the_o verity_n of_o the_o roma_fw-it ●e_v cathelike_n faith_n be_v demonstrate_v by_o industion_n from_o a●l_a other_o religion_n to_o wit_n to_o demonstrate_v by_o induction_n from_o all_o the_o religion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o verity_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a faith_n as_o for_o the_o atheist_n he_o ought_v indeed_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o all_o speech_n of_o religion_n for_o that_o he_o have_v none_o yet_o his_o prophanesse_n be_v disproove_v in_o the_o first_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n say_v i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o pagan_n religion_n be_v disproove_v in_o the_o same_o article_n in_o that_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o one_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o jewish_a and_o turkish_a sect_n be_v disproove_v in_o the_o second_o article_n for_o that_o they_o believe_v not_o in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n all_o sect_n of_o christian_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v disproove_v in_o that_o they_o have_v break_v this_o nine_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n disobey_v its_o authority_n in_o the_o lawful_a head_n and_o pastor_n of_o it_o let_v they_o harken_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 17._o deut_n 17._o if_o thou_o perceive_v that_o the_o judgement_n with_o thou_o be_v hard_a and_o doubtful_a etc._n etc._n thou_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o levitical_a stock_n and_o to_o the_o judge_n that_o shall_v be_v at_o that_o time_n and_o thou_o shall_v do_v whatsoever_o they_o that_o be_v precedent_n of_o the_o place_n which_o our_o lord_n shall_v choose_v shall_v say_v and_o teach_v thou_o according_a to_o his_o law_n and_o thou_o shall_v follow_v their_o sentence_n neither_o shall_v thou_o decline_v to_o the_o right_a hand_n nor_o to_o the_o left_a hand_n but_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v proud_a refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o at_o that_o time_n minister_v to_o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o man_n shall_v die_v here_o now_o i_o cry_v to_o all_o those_o christian_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n grecian_n arian_n &c._n &c._n and_o to_o all_o the_o several_a church_n of_o protestant_n and_o especial_o to_o you_o my_o very_a dear_a countryman_n for_o who_o soul_n i_o have_v long_o hazard_v my_o corporal_a life_n you_o have_v contemn_v this_o great_a authority_n or_o rather_o a_o great_a than_o it_o be_v you_o have_v refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o priest_n not_o of_o the_o levitical_a stock_n but_o of_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o pastor_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o pastor_n who_o govern_v the_o primitive_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v then_o actual_o govern_v it_o when_o your_o church_n begin_v these_o you_o know_v you_o have_v disobey_v and_o stand_v still_o disobedient_a unto_o general_a counsel_n have_v declare_v against_o you_o all_o and_o especial_o against_o the_o several_a sect_n of_o protestant_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n consist_v of_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o five_o father_n beside_o the_o most_o eminent_a doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n all_o roman_a catholik_o obey_v this_o council_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o you_o disobey_v it_o disobedience_n to_o the_o levitical_a priest_n and_o priest_n by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v punish_v with_o death_n and_o your_o disobedience_n i_o be_o sorry_a with_o all_o my_o hart_n but_o i_o have_v no_o scruple_n to_o speak_v it_o shall_v without_o doubt_n if_o you_o repent_v not_o be_v punish_v with_o eternal_a death_n therefore_o i_o conjure_v you_o by_o the_o sweet_a merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o who_o you_o believe_v and_o who_o you_o expect_v to_o be_v your_o judge_n to_o reflect_v upon_o your_o soul_n and_o upon_o true_a religion_n call_v to_o mind_n how_o your_o church_n begin_v and_o how_o schism_n and_o heresy_n begin_v and_o if_o you_o find_v as_o you_o shall_v easy_o find_v that_o you_o have_v begin_v after_o the_o very_a same_o manner_n as_o they_o in_o disobedience_n to_o the_o head_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o all_o but_o your_o own_o will_n your_o beginner_n be_v as_o core_n 16._o nu._n 16._o dathan_n and_o abiron_n that_o begin_v division_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n their_o follower_n that_o live_v with_o they_o be_v as_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o former_a who_o god_n destroy_v also_o with_o they_o and_o you_o rise_v up_o to_o maintain_v their_o disobedience_n when_o they_o be_v dead_a and_o go_v be_v like_a to_o those_o who_o after_o their_o death_n rise_v up_o to_o justify_v their_o cause_n and_o be_v therefore_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n consume_v with_o fire_n forsake_v their_o company_n desert_n that_o unlawful_a cause_n and_o return_v again_o into_o the_o sheepfold_a of_o christ_n if_o you_o desire_v to_o be_v save_v the_o ten_o article_n forgiveness_n of_o sin_n none_o can_v right_o consider_v these_o word_n as_o make_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o he_o must_v needs_o conceive_v some_o great_a mystery_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o they_o only_o to_o profess_v that_o god_n can_v or_o do_v forgive_v sin_n neither_o can_v he_o in_o reason_n understande_v any_o other_o thing_n then_o that_o there_o be_v power_n of_o forgive_a sin_n in_o that_o church_n which_o they_o have_v new_o profess_v this_o be_v indeed_o a_o gift_n and_o privilege_n worthy_a to_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o public_a creed_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n before_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n appear_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o breathe_v upon_o they_o say_v 20._o io._n 20._o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v and_o who_o you_o shall_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v this_o be_v a_o mystery_n which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v great_a reason_n to_o remember_v and_o often_o to_o inculcate_v unto_o her_o people_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n have_v profess_v their_o belief_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o next_o place_n will_v commemorate_v this_o gift_n and_o power_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n that_o with_o gratitude_n we_o may_v remember_v it_o and_o make_v good_a use_n of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o great_a work_n say_v s._n 52._o aug._n tract_n 52._o augustine_n to_o make_v a_o evil_a man_n good_a then_o to_o make_v the_o world_n of_o nothing_o yet_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o man_n to_o do_v this_o great_a work_n it_o be_v give_v i_o say_v unto_o man_n for_o it_o be_v not_o of_o his_o own_o power_n but_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n god_n only_o of_o his_o own_o natural_a power_n can_v forgive_v sin_n 43._o esa_fw-la 43._o i_o be_o he_o that_o take_v clean_o away_o thy_o iniquity_n but_o he_o can_v if_o he_o will_v give_v that_o power_n unto_o man_n the_o apostle_n have_v that_o power_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n as_o they_o have_v of_o he_o to_o work_v many_o miracle_n which_o be_v as_o hard_a and_o unpossible_a to_o nature_n as_o to_o forgive_v sin_n judge_n of_o themselves_o have_v not_o power_n to_o judge_v but_o when_o the_o king_n make_v they_o judge_n and_o give_v they_o power_n than_o they_o have_v power_n and_o may_v exercise_v it_o and_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o be_v good_a and_o valid_a because_o the_o king_n who_o give_v they_o that_o power_n set_v they_o in_o his_o own_o place_n give_v they_o to_o represent_v his_o own_o person_n and_o ratify_v the_o